Guile Faith●rne fe: Hen. Do: Cary Baro de Leppington Comes Monmouthensis, et Hon mi: Ord: Balniae Eques. HISTORICAL RELATIONS OF THE United Provinces & OF FLANDERS, Written Originally in Italian By Cardinal BENTIVOGLIO: And now Rendered into ENGLISH By the Right Honourable HENRY Earl of MONMOUTH. LONDON, Printed for HUMPHREY MOSELEY and are to be ●old at his shop at the sign of the Princes Arm in Saint Paul's Churchyard, 1652. A TABLE of all the Chapters of the Relations of Cardinal BENTIVOGLIO. The Chapters of the First Book. 1 HOw many the United Provinces of the Low-countrieses are in number, and how situated. page 1 2 The condition of the Country 2 3 The natural condition of the People ib. 4 The Form of their Government, and first the form of the Government of each Province in particular 3 5 The Form of the Government of the General Union 7 6 Their Forces; and first of their force by land 10 7 Of their Maretine Forces 12 8 Of their Incomes, and expenses of the Union 15 The Chapters of the Second Book. 1 AN Introduction briefly describing the Wars of Flanders; the Duchess of Parma is made Regent of Flanders. 17 2 The Distastes, and the nature of the Prince of Orange 18 3 The Duke of Alva succeeds the Duchess of Parma 20 4 Flanders is wholly altered, a great part thereof doth rise; and the War is kindled ib. 5 The Duke of Alva departs; the Commendador Magior of Castille succeeds him and dies 22 5 The Council of State takes the Government upon them 24 6 Don John of Austria comes unexpectedly into Flanders, and soon dies 25 7 The Prince of Parma succeeds Don John; the Rebels choose the Duke of Alanzon for their new Prince; the Prince of Orange is hurt with a Musket-shot 27 8 The Rebels are reduced into great straitss; Alanzon withdraws into France; and not long after the Prince of Orange is slain 28 9 The Rebels remain in their first Pertenacity: the Duke of Parma Dies 29 10 Three Governors in the space of three years, succeed in the Government of Flanders: to wit, Count Mansfielt, Archduke Ernestus, and Count Fuentes 30 11 The Government passeth into the hands of Cardinal Archduke Albertus; who marrying the King of Spain's Daughter, Goes into Spain: Cardinal Andrea d' Austria, remains in his place 31 12 Archduke Albertus, and the Infanta Isabel, come to Elanders: the Archduke is routed, and wounded at Newport 32 13 Marquis Spinola brings Forces from Italy: the Army is put into his hands: and finally the War is suspended by a Truce for twelve years 33 The Chapters of the Third Book. 1 A Discourse upon the Person of Count Maurice of Nasssaw 36 2 Divers other particulars touching Count Maurice his Person are touched upon 38 3 Who be the United Provinces greatest Enemies 40 4 Who be their greatest Friends: and first of their Friendship with France 41 5 Of their Friendship with England 43 6 Of their Friendship with other Princes 44 7 'Tis Argued whither this new Commonwealth of the United Provinces be like to last or no? 45 8 The begun Argument of Discourse is ended, and with it the Relation 48 The Relation of Flanders; to wit: of the Provinces which yet remain under the Obedience of their Highnesses, the Archduke's Albertus and his wife the Infanta Isabel The First Part. 1 OF the Archduke's their Nature, and Customs 52 2 of the condition of those States which they possess 54 3 Of their Court 58 4 Of their Officers, and Servants 59 5 What Intelligence the Archduke's hold with their neighbours 62 6 Of the Army which the King of Spain maintains in Flanders. 63 The Second Part. 1 OF the State of Religion in those Provinces which yet are under the Obedience of the Archduke's 68 2 Of the State of Religion in Holland, and in the other United Provinces 74 3 Of the State of Religion in England 77 4 Of the State of Religion in Scotland 83 5 Of the State of Religion in Ireland 84 In this present Treatise these following Relations are contained. 1 THe Relation of the United Provinces of Flanders, by which name of Flanders (which is commonly used to signify the Provinces of the Lower Germany) in all the Relations of this Volume, are understood the Provinces of the Low Countries, which were formerly all in one entire Body, subject to the House of Burgony; and afterwards passed into the hands of the House of Austria 1 2 The Relation of Flanders; to wit, of those Provinces which remains yet under the obedience of their Highnesses, the Archduke's Albertus, and Isabel his wife, Infanta of Spain 51 3 A short Relation of Denmark 86 4 A short Relation of the Hugonots of France 89 5 A Relation of the Treaty of Truce in Flanders 95 6 A Relation of the Commotions which followed in Flanders upon occasion of the differences between the Elector of Brandenburg, and the Duke of Neoburg, touching the Inheritance of the House of Cleves 129 7 A Relation of the Prince of Conde his flying from France 151 A RELATION OF THE United Provinces OF FLANDERS, Written by the Cardinal Bentivoglio. BOOK 1. CAP. 1. The Number of the United Provinces, and their situation. THe United Provinces of Flanders are in number seven; to wit, the Dukedom of Ghelderland, the Counties of Holland, and of Zealand; and the Lordships of Utricht, Friesland, Overisel, and Groninghen. These Provinces are environed for the most part by the Ocean Sea. Zealand is distinguished into several Islands; Holland is a Peninsula; and the others are cut through by many rivers: the greatest and most navigable whereof are the Rhine and the Mause: The Rhine, which at its entrance into the Province of Gelderland with one of its greatest Branches is called the Wael, before it goes out from thence, joins with the Mause. These two rivers are hardly well wedded together here, when presently parting one from another, they form an Island of a large Circuit, they join together again; then confounding their names together with their Channels, they enlarge and extend themselves into large Gulfs; and watering Holland and Zealand by many spacious inlets, they at last disgorge and loose themselves in the Ocean. Zealand, Holland, Friesland, and Groninghen are played upon by the Sea towards the North; then turning towards the East, the same Provinces of Groninghen, and Ghelderland, border upon Germany. Towards the South and West the same Province of Ghelderland confines upon the State of Cleves, and the Country of Liege; and Holland and Zealand join on the same side with the Counties of Flanders and Dukedom of Brabant; under the Province of Ghelderland is comprehended the County of Zutfen, which is one of the 17 Provinces, whereof the Body of the Low Countries was formerly framed, when the said Countries were joined together in one: yet do not the United Provinces enjoy whole Ghelderland, a certain proportion whereof is in the Archduke's possession; but to countervail this, they likewise extend their dominions into the Provinces of Brabant and Flanders. That part of the Country which the United Provinces enjoy in Brabant and Flanders, is held by them under the name of the General Union of the whole seven Provinces. CHAP. II The Quality or Condition of the united Provinces. THE United Provinces abound almost with all things, through the accommodation of the Sea and Rivers. That which of themselves they chief abound in, is, Fish, Pasture, and Cattles; neither is it almost to be expressed what quantity of Butter and Cheese they sand abroad to other parts, and reserve for their own proper use: Their situation is exceeding low, subject to Winds, Moisture, and Rain; and their Inhabitants may be said to live enclosed by water: Holland and Zealand are the lowest, and most infested by the Sea, the force and violence whereof is withstood and held in, by large high Rampires of Earth, built up with great Stones, Raftures of Wood, and other tenacious and condence Materials, where occasion requires: in Holland more particularly, they endeavour to keep the Country dry by great store of Wind-mill, and other Artificial Engines; yet the greatest part thereof lies under the water in the Winter Season; so as you would think that the land were then swallowed up by the Sea: the said Provinces are very well peopled, especially, Holland wherein Traffic is the most frequent, and the Concourse of Foreigners greatest. They have in them great store of great Cities, and handsome Towns, the chiefest whereof are Nininghem in Ghelderland; in Holland, Amsterdam; in Zealand, Midleburgh; in the Province of Utricht, the City Utricht, in Friesland, Lewrden; Deventer, in Overisel; and in Groninghen, a City called by the said name. CHAP. III The Natural Qualities or Conditions of the People of the united Provinces. THE Men of these Countries are for the most part of a large Stature, of a handsome and fair aspect, and strong and able of body; their minds are not lesle vigorous then are their bodies, which is seen by the so long and pertenacious resistance, which hath been by them made to the Spanish Forces; They are of an open and pleasant Nature; very industrious, and much given to Traffic; very apt for all Arts, especially such as are Manual, and Mechanical, they love liberty above measure, and therefore are most tenacious of their Privileges; and hence it is that they are apt to be jealous and easy to alteration; and their double flexibility made use of as a means by him who excited the troubles in these our times in Flanders, made them without much difficulty afterwards rebel, both against the Catholic Church, and against their natural Prince. The first flame of this Combustion broke forth in Zealand, & therefore this is the most obstinate of all the other Provinces, in her hatred to the Church and Spain. Hence was kindled that great fire of War which for the space of almost one whole half age, could never be extinguished, till at last it was rather smothered up then quenched with the Truce which was concluded for twelve years; at the first some of the aforesaid Provinces united themselves with but small Forces, and the first band of Unity was only between Holland and Zealand, which flanked by Rivers and by the Sea, and having an unalterable obstinacy, added to the natural strength of their situation, might easily even with a very few handfuls of earth, make good their party against a vast Monarchy; afterwards, as the War continued, other Provinces suffering themselves also to be corrupted by the licentiousness of heresy and out of a desire to reduce themselves to a Free Government, the Union already begun gathered strength, till at last the seven above said Provinces did formally confederate themselves; and openly denying all obedience to their Prince, they declared themselves by their own proper authority to be free, absolute, and sovereign; they took up Arms at first under pretence of the violation of their Privileges; and have since fought for the conservation of their usurped Liberty; till with the managing of Articles, it was agreed upon by the Truce, that they may repute themselves for Free Provinces, and the Catholic King and the Archdukes may hold them notwithstanding as subjected Provinces. CHAP. IV. Of the Government of the United Provinces; and first how each of them is Governed in particular. BEfore the United Provinces made any insurrection, or reduced themselves to the condition of Free Commonwealths, their Government was the same with that, which as yet is observed in those other Provinces which are under the Archdukes. Each of their Governments was composed of Three several Forms joined in one: to wit, Monarchy, Aristocracy, and Democrasy: but so tempered as the most sublime part consisted in the person of the Prince: and the Optimatis, and popularity did also retain their part in a moderate proportion. Their States (by which name of States is understood the Body of each Province which they represent) were framed most commonly of three Orders of Personages: Ecclesiastics; the better sort of Nobility, and Citizens together with the Inhabitants of the best Towns. The Eclesiasticks were for the most part Abbots of several Monastical Orders, and their Monasteries were usually in the Country; and unless it were in their intervening upon occasions in the resolutions of the States when general meetings were had, they had little to do in the administration of Public Affairs, the Nobles did also usually dwell in their Castles, and Country Territories, and the principal Offices of every Province were exercised by them. And the Cities divided generally into 3 sorts of persons, to wit, into some few Gentlemen of a middle condition, into the better sort of Citizens, and into the meaner People, were governed according to their Privileges and ancient Customs, like unto so many little and particular Republics; and their government was so framed, as the chief Magistracy of every place being in the hand of personages of most respect, yet the other two inferior degrees of persons, did participate proportionably in the supreme Magistracy. The assembling of the General States of all the Provinces, as also those of every particular Province, the nominating of their Governors; the renewing the chief Magistrate of every City every year; the providing for Offices which were enjoyed by the Nobility of the Country; the conferring of other Offices of Judicature upon men of the long Robe which are distributed in every Province, together with many other prerogatives depended upon the supreme authority of the Prince; which, as I have said, made the Prince to have the most supreme and eminent place in Government. The Prince and people did then hold together jointly after this manner; The Prince contenting himself with a power not altogether absolute, and the People with a limited Liberty; their government being just such as is between the Head and the Members in a man's body. The same Prince had three chief Counsels, which served for eyes to all the Provinces by him governed; to wit, a Council of State, a Council of Revenue, and a Privy Council. In the first, the most important public affairs were handled; in the second, the Prince his patrimony, and the moneys contributed by the Provinces; and in the third, matters of justice depending upon the supreme Authority of the said Prince. And thus the Prince and People seemed to vie in the cementing and uniting themselves as it were with the bonds of Freewill, whereby to 'cause the most pleasant and proportioned harmony with could be desired in the aforesaid government. Thus were the United Provinces governed before the insurrection: Now I will show how they are governed at the present. Monarchy being extinguished in them all, the States in each Province do succeed in that supreme Authority which formerly did reside in the Prince. And the States which in most of the Provinces did before consist of three degrees of personages, do now consist in all of them, only of the Nobility and Cities; Heresy having totally extinguished the Order of Ecclesiastics, save only in the Province of Utricht, which did for a long time belong to Ecclesiastical Princes, so as there is some shadow of this Order yet observed in their meetings of the States, wherein some Chapters of Canons do concur part Heretics, part Catholics, who are notwithstanding tolerated in that City. Thus of a Government which was chief Monarchical, the United Provinces are become a Government partly Aristocratical, partly Democraticall, according as some one of these Governments hath the greatest influence in them. Yet in almost every one of these Provinces, the two forms are tempered together, and some beams of Monarchy may be said to appear, by reason of the particular privileges which are granted by the Provinces to their Governors, on whom many things now depend (as shall be shown in due place) which did first relate unto the supreme authority of the Prince. Let us now consider the Government of every particular Province apart, that we may consider afterwards how the union of them altogether is governed. And because Holland doth much surpass all the other Provinces in the number of Cities, in the multitude of Inhabitants, in Opulency, and in Traffic, let us see in particular how this Province is governed; for then some short Observations will serve to be made of the rest. The Prince of Orange was Governor of Holland, Zealand, and Utricht, when the insurrection in Flanders first arose, which was at first begun, and afterwards obstinately maintained by the first two of those Provinces; and because the same Prince of Orange was the first contriver thereof, that he might the more easily compass his ambitious ends, he propounded two things in particular: The one, to beaten down the Nobility as much as might be, which might prove great obstacles to his design: And the other, to work it so, as not any one in Holland should be uninvolved in the same Insurrection: he therefore under various pretences made the people jealous of the Nobility: And on the other side did so handle the matter, that whereas formerly there was only six Cities in Holland, which went together with the Nobles, in forming the States of the Province, they were increased to much a greater number. The spetious pretence whereof was, that for the more easy maintaining of Arms in the common Cause which was now in hand, it was necessary that all the chief Towns in Holland should particularly communicate in the Government; but the true and more hidden end was, to the end that every part of the Province might by its own proper engagement make the Insurrection the more universal. So then, these six Cities (for by this name I will term indifferently those Cities and principal Towns which concur to make up the States of every Province) were increased to the number of eighteen. The first were these, Dort, Harlem, Delfe, Leyden, Amsterdam, and Der-Goude: and the twelve others which were afterwards added were, Rotterdam, Gorchom, Schedam, Schonhoven, the Brill, Al●mar, Horn, Encusen, Edam, Manac●am, Medemblick and Purmerent. So as of these eighteen Cities, and of the order of the Nobility, the States of Holland are at this hour composed: Neither doth the whole order of Nobility share a greater part therein, then doth every single and particular City. I will now tell you how every particular City is governed: First, the chief managing of affairs consists in a Council composed of a certain prefixed number of persons; they have afterwards a chief Magistrate, and others of lesser condition. The persons of the Council are seldom changed, but the Magistrates are altered every year. All the Magistrates are chosen out of the number of this Council. The greatest is usually composed of one or two Burgamasters, some Sheriffs, one Scout master, one Treasurer, & one or two Pensioners. Thus are the persons called which intervene in the chiefest Magistracies. The Burgamasters part is to look unto such things as chief concern the government of the Cities, and their Territories. The Sheriffs together with the Scoutmaster deal in the administration of Justice, both Civil and Criminal. The Treasurer manageth the public moneys; and the Pensioners are Doctors of the Law, and are versed in City business, and serve for Council to the chief Magistrate. The other lesser Magistrates depend upon the greater, and have cognisance of divers things belonging to the government of every City. This is briefly the form wherewith the Cities in Holland are generally governed. The Council of Justice is the same that it was in the former government: To this Council the civil causes of every City have their address by way of appeal, and it comprehendeth also the Province of Zealand; in criminal causes no appeal is allowed, the absolute authority of determinating, residing in the chief Magistracies of every City, and because formely a new appeal was allowed from the Provincial Council of Holland, as also from almost all the other Provinces of Flanders to a supreme Council, constituted in the City of Malines; instead thereof the said two Provinces have erected a supreme Tribunal in Holland, which they call the High Council; to which appeals are made from the Provincial Counsels both of Holland and Zealand: Here are final judgements given, no place being left for any farther appeal, save that sometimes a review of the cause is allowed, wherein some Judges are added. And thus much may serve for the course of Justice. In such resolutions which are to be put on concerning the most important public affairs which appertain to the common interest of all Holland, the Assembly of the States of the Province must be called; which States, as hath been formerly said, are made up of the Nobility, and Cities, and Represent the whole body of the Province: The Nobles are but few, and their power as small: The Cities which intervene in the Assembly are those already named, and for Deputies in their name, there are usually sent thither one of the Burgamasters, together with one Pensioner; the Nobles making likewise their deputation according to their wont. The States meet usually three or four times the year, more or lesle according as occasion requires; when they are met they treat and resolve upon such things as are taken into debate; and then of so many Cities one only as it were is framed, and they are not longer then divided members, but one united body, bound and fastened together by the tye of public good and the rule of reason; and it is seldom seen but that what is agreed upon by the mayor part is yielded unto by the lesser; else force would not avail them, since they are all equal in Liberty. The degree of the Nobility have the first rank, and then the Deputies of Cities take their places, according to their several degrees. The Assembly being ended, the Sovereign Decrees thereof are executed by a permanent and constant Council, newly instituted in this alteration of Government, which represents the body of the said Assembly. This Council is composed of Deputies, which are likewise voted thither by both the orders of the Nobility and Cities; and these Deputies are changed from time to time. The public moneys which are contributed by the Provinces are therein handled, and the care thereof is to propound reasons to the Nobles and Cities for the convocation of the Assembly, as also the calling and reducing of it together. After this Holland hath a Governor of the entire Province, who enjoys very great prerogatives both of honour and Authority; the managing of the Militia depends on him, and whatsoever appertains to the ●afety of the Province; without his approbation the States of the Province resolve upon nothing of importance; and in the distribution of many Offices the States nominate three persons, and he chooseth one of-those three which he pleaseth: he may also remit the punishment of faults committed; he changeth and renueth every year the chief Magistrates of every City; and to this purpose double the the most important Privileges which the Governor enjoys, which together with many others makes him be very much respected and honoured in this new form of Government in Holland: so as of one of the Princes Officers which he had want to be in the former Government, he is now instead of him, made head of the Province: but yet a Head subordinate to the supream-authority of the States, which represent now as I have said, that supreme Eminency which did first consist in the person of the Prince; This in brief is the Government of the Province of Holland. The same Form almost is followed by the other Provinces; in some notwithstanding the number of the Cities is greater, in some lesser, which concur with the Nobility, to frame the States of the Province. And the popular multitude is in some greater in the Government of the Cities, in some lesle. Every Province hath its particular Council of Justice, as in former times, to which Council only in Civil affairs appeals are made from sentences given in the Magistracy of Cities, both in Holland and Zealand, as hath been said. Affairs receive their final determination in this Council, unless it be in point of review, as in the high Council of Holland and Zealand. Every Province doth likewise acknowledge a Governor, though many times one and the same Governor exerciseth this Charge in divers Provinces; as Count Mauris of Nassaw succeeded to his Father the Prince of Orange, in the Government of Holland, Zealand and Utricht, to whom the Government of Overisel is since added, and Count William of the said Family is Governor of Friesland and Groninghen; and this may suffice for what concerns the particular Government of every Province. CHAP. V The Government of the whole Union. AFter having considered every one of the United Provinces apart, as divided Members, I come now to the Government of them United all together in one Body. The Body of the Union consists chief in the great Assembly of the States General of the whole seven Provinces. This great Assembly represents the Sovereignty of the Union, and retains now the same eminency over them all, as the Prince did in the former Government: This Assembly is composed of the particular States of each Province: So as the particular States are form of two sorts of People, of the Noble men of the Country, and of the Deputies of Cities; just so the General Assembly of the whole Union is of the same nature with the particular Assemblies of each particular Province, and is composed of the same two degrees of personages: as often then as any new occasion ariseth wherein great affairs are to be treated of which concern the common interest of the Union, the great Assembly is called; the Summons being given out, each Province sends its Deputies, and sand more or lesle in number, as best pleaseth each Province. Of these Deputies the General Assembly is form, and is divided into as many Votes, as the Union is divided into Provinces; the Votes being numbered according to the number of the Provinces, and not according to the multitude of the Deputies: The great Assembly being met, they fall upon such resolutions as appertain to the common Interest of the whole Union; as of War, Peace, Truce, of making new confederacies, or of dissolving such as are already made; of laying on new Impositions, or taking of such as are already laid on: and other such like important affairs, all which have respect to the General Union. To pitch upon such resolutions, it is requisite that the seven Votes of the seven Provinces do concur; and because the Interest of one doth not always agreed with the Interest of another; hence it is that they usually proceed very slowly in all businesses; and some time that is contradicted by some one Province, which is unanimously agreed upon by all the rest, each of them being desirous to depend with equal liberty upon its proper member or Vote, as all of them with equal commodity depend upon the entire Body: but because in disputes obstinacy doth sometimes prevail over reason; in such cases, the Deputies of such Provinces as are of one and the same mind, are want to choose some of themselves whom they sand to the Province whose Deputies differ from the great Assembly, thus to endeavour to make them join in their Votes with the rest; and thus opiniatracy at last yields to reason. Thus was Zealand drawn to given way unto the Truce, to which it appeared to be too obstinately averse. Upon occasions then of the highest importance, the great Assembly of the Union is usually called, as hath been said; and in the resolving upon any thing, the Votes of the seven Provinces must all agreed. This great Assembly is notwithstanding but very seldom called; it bears with it too much of business, for thereupon all the whole Provinces must not only move, but even all the best Cities, and best qualified noblemen that are in them. It is said that in the last great Assembly at Berghen-ap-Zone, when the Truce was concluded, the Deputies which met there were in number 800. And because it is requisite that there be a continual standing Power which may execute what hath been resolved upon by the great Assembly, the States General of the seven Provinces have unanimously settled a firm and constant Council which doth represent the great Assembly, and keeps it continually in being, upon the authority whereof the execution of the Sovereign decrees of the great Assembly doth depend. This Council consists of Deputies which are from time to time sent by the Provinces: Besides the Authority of executing the Sovereign decrees of the great Assembly, the same Council doth expedite the weightiest affairs wherein the Interest of the whole Union is from time to time concerned: and if it shall so fall out that the great Assembly of the States General be to be called for any new extraordinary business of great consequence, this Council draws up the motives and sends them to the particular States of every Province, to the end that preparation may be had in every one of them requisite for the General convocation of them all. The Authority of this Council is very great; it is called the Council of the States General: and it is distinguished into seven Votes, as the great Assembly which is by it represented, is distinguished into seven Provinces. One of the Deputies is head of this Council by the name of Precedent, and to the end that the prerogative of every Province may be equal, the Precedents are weekly changed, beginning with those Provinces which are prime in dignity, and which are followed by the rest. To boot with the Council of the States General, the United Provinces have three Counsels apart, one of State, one of the Treasury, another of the Admiralty which, depends upon the Union, and which are subordinate to the Council of the States General; the power of the Council of State is also great; on it depends the execution of things belonging to the War, and the disposing of moneys which are disposed of by the Union in land Service; all Military affairs even of the Army are likewise ordered by the said Council; and the General in occasions of War is always attended by some of the said Council, to see that his undertake be managed by their joint Authority, who do then represent the Supreme Authority of the Union; besides matters belonging to War, the said Council hath its part in the most important Affairs, being as it were a Senate which always intervenes in the Resolutions of highest nature, which are handled in the Council of the States General. The Council of State is composed of Deputies who intervene there in the name of each Province, and the Governors of Provinces have therein a place also. Into the Council of the Treasury such moneys are brought as are contributed by every Province for the Occurrences of the whole Union; and this Council is likewise framed of Deputies of the said Union. The Council of the Admiralty hath cognisance of Maretine affairs, and through it doth pass the monies which the United Provinces receive by their incomes by Sea, the body of this Council is divided into six members, four of which are distributed in Holland, one in Zealand, and one in Friesland, and these members are likewise Deputies sent thither from each Province: all the Deputies who intervene in these Counsels which depend upon the body of the whole Union, are frequently changed, and each Province alters them according to their particular Governments. The same general Union hath also a supreme head in the managing of their Arms by land and Sea, which command at this present is executed by Count Mauris of Nassaw, who succeeded his Father the Prince of Orange therein, as he did in being Governor of the abovenamed Provinces. This in brief is the form of Government which is now observed in the Commonwealth of the general Union of the United Provinces, in which form it may be observed, that as every Province hath endeavoured to vary as little as may be from the former Government, so the whole Union hath had the same respect. To this purpose the same chief Counsels are retained which were formerly observed for the dispatch of affairs which did appertain to the Common Interest of the whole Low Countries, except only the Privy Council, whose affairs is now handled in occurrent businesses by the Council of the States▪ General; and for what belongs to the Admiralty, the Council by reason of the multitude of Maratine affairs which continually occur in the United Provinces, hath rather been added unto, then instituted anew; for at all times the Princes of the Low Countries have had an Admiral, who together with many other Officers did as then form as it were a Council for Sea affairs. These Counsels which depend upon the general Union, do usually reside in the Hague in Holland, except only the Council of the Admiralty, which is divided into many members, and through several Provinces as hath been said. The Hague is an open Village, but which for situation, the resort of People, and exquisite buildings, may be compared to most of the noblest and most delightful Cities. The Counts of Holland did anciently reside in the Hague; and in the Palace built by the said Counts, the abovementioned Counsels meet. The fitness of Holland's situation, as also of this Palace, and the laying of the first and strongest roots of the rebellion there hath occasioned the Prerogative of being the place of public Counsels, and affairs to that Province. By the preceding narration you may see what the present Government of the whole United Provinces in common is, and that the joint Government of them altogether holds great proportion and correspondence with the several Government of each one of them. The Cities and Nobles are as it were the Mussels which shape out the Member of each Province, and the Provinces are as members whereof the body of the whole Union is composed; the particular States of every particular Province hold the Sovereignty thereof; and the States General retain the Sovereign Eminency of the Union; the particular States consist of Noblemen and Cities, as also do the States General. The Assembly of the particular States of each Province meet upon great affairs; and the Assembly of the States General of the whole Union upon affairs of greater importance, as the particular States of every Province are still kept on foot in the Council which depends thereon; so is the great Assembly of the Union in the Council of the States General which represents the whole Body. Every Province hath a Supreme Head, and the whole Union a Head of great Eminency. By this conformity, and mutual knots of Government, the United Provinces are tied together and jointly concur in what concerns the common Interest. CHAP. VI The Land-Forces of the United Provinces. LEt us now consider the strength of the United Provinces; first therefore as by land, then by Sea; in what concerns the land, the strength of their Country, the condition of their Towns, the abundance of ammunition for War, the quality and number of their Soldiers may aptly be taken into consideration. First the strength of the United Provinces cannot be imagined to be greater then it is. They are secured on many parts by the Sea; and within land, the Mause and the Rhine distinguished into several branches, together with the Ysel, and many other Rivers serve them for Bulwarks in many other parts. Zealand in particular is divided into many Islands, so as by reason of its situation it may be said to be Impenetrable. Holland is likewise almost unaccessable on all sides, in respect of the many large Channels, and Arms of the Sea, which do so many several ways divide it, and encompass it; and generally the situation of all the other Provinces is low and spongy; full of channels and rivers, and very hard to be won into. But their Towns are not lesle strong then is their Country; all the Towns upon their Frontiers are strongly munited, particularly those which lie towards the Archduke's Country, where their jealousies are greatest. And to begin with Sluse in the Province of Flanders; this is a place which is thought almost untakable, as well for the strength of its situation, which is altogether among Marshes and low Channels, as having all the higher parts thereof very well fortified with outward Earth-works where the Trenches may be opened. In Brabant they have the strong Fort of Lillo, almost within sight of Antwerp. They have Berghen-ap-Zone, Breda, Gatrinburg, Heusden, Grave, and the strong Hold of Crevecoeur, all of them places strongly munited both by Nature and Art On that side of Ghelderland which looks towards Brabant, and in that part thereof which is within the Archduke's Dominions, the Low Countries have likewise many strong Holds, and particularly the Fort of Saint Andrews, neare Balduke in the Island of Bomell, and not far of that of Worden, Niminghen, and Schincks Scence; to boot that on that side of Ghelderland, the Rhine and Mause make the entrance very difficult. Moore inward the said Provinces have generally many strong places, both by situation and Art; nor is it almost to be expressed what diligence they use in the managing of their Towns and Forts. For what concerns warlike ammunition, all the strong Holds and Towns of the United Provinces are abundantly well provided; they have great store of Artillery every where, and of all other Provisions necessary for War, of Engines, and all sorts of warlike Instruments; great likewise is their Provision of Victuals every where; and 'tis seldom or never seen that they loose any place for want, either of victuals or ammunition, which are particularly extracted out of Holland and Zealand, and cannot with greater accommodation be distributed, being conveyed in boats by water to every place, and where rivers are wanting, their default is made good by channels cut out by hand, of which the whole Country is full, and as it were linked together. As for the condition and number of their Soldiers; their Militia is composed of partly homebred Soldiers, partly foreigners; their Country is not great enough to furnish them with Soldiers sufficient in number for their occasions, nor are all their people equally adapted for the Militia profession. Those of Holland and Zealand are not good at land-Service; the other Provinces breed Soldiers good enough both for horse and foot; but by sea the Hollanders and Zealanders bear away the bell, not only among all those of the Northern Nations, but even throughout the whole World. The greatest Nerve of their proper Militia consists in the Soldiers of their own Country which lie most within land; but the strongest and most solid nerve of their Army consists in the number and condition of their foreign Forces. Since the first beginning of the War of Flanders, and that the United Provinces began to be favoured by France and England, they have always had great store of Soldiers from each of these Kingdoms; yea even since the Truce they have a great strength of foot from France, England and Scotland, and to boot with the Soldiers of these Nations, they take into pay a great number of Germane foot. The United Provinces may at this time have in their Army about 6000 Frenchmen, 4000 whereof are maintained by the Crown of France under two field Marshals, the other 2000 are mingled among those of the other Nations. The English may be about 3000, the Scots 2000, and the Germane 3000: All the rest of their foot consists of their own Soldierie, by this account we may judge that the United Provinces maintain now since the Truce 20000 foot, and 2500 horse; to boot with the 4000 forementioned French foot, which together with 200 horse are still maintained by the Crown of France: By reason of their continual jealousies of the Spaniard, they have not any ways lessened their foreign forces, though the Truce be made, and have cashiered but few of their own men. Of forreinors, the French are much commended for their valour; next the English, and after them the Scots; the Germane are naturally slow, but well governed, and very useful for manual works which hap hourly in their Armies; and as for the People themselves of the United Provinces, they lean more to the nature of the Dutch, then of forreinors, and this may suffice for their Strength by Landlord CHAP. VII. Of their Maretine Forces. FOur considerations may also be had concerning their Forces by Sea. The quantity of their Vessels; the abundance of all things necessary to furnish them, the number of their Mariners, and their Skill in Navigation. To begin with the number of their Vessels, by common judgement it is esteemed to be as great as almost that of all Europe besides. The number of ships which people the arms of the Sea, the Bays and Havens of Holland and Zealand is almost infinite; besides there are very many in the Marratine parts of Friesland; but their number is greatest in Holland, and more in Amsterdam then in any other City of that Province. It will not be amiss to say something here in particular of Amsterdam: On the more Northern parts of Holland the Sea, after having made its way through more then one obstacle by land, and made several breaches, washes Holland again in its most shutup parts, and makes there a large Gulf which in their language is called Zuyderzee the Sea dividing itself from this greater gulf into many lesser, which are all Navigable for any Vessel how great soever, comes at last to shut itself up, and as it were to hid itself within land in a deep channel, upon whose banks the City extends itself; the Walls whereof are not only washed by the Sea, but the said Sea passeth through the City, in many Channels by which lesser Barks do commodiously convey from the greater all sorts of Merchandise which are carried into the Warehouses and Magazines of the City, the greater Vissels ride within sight of the Walls, which are so many and stand so thick, as their Masts and Sails do bound the sight of the lookers on: so many ships fraught with all sorts of Merchandise come from all parts of the World, to meet and inglobe themselves as it were in Amsterdam; so as that Town may in these days be esteemed the most frequented and Merchantlike, not only of Europe, but even of the whole world. This City is grown to thi● greatness and Opulency by reason of the War; though commence did formerly flourish there very much, the War hath much diminished the Traffic of Antwerp, and hath afforded occasion to the Hollanders and Zealanders to Traffic into the Indieses; so as these are the reasons of the so great growth of Amsterdam. In former time Antwerp was the staple Town of Merchandise of all Europe, and Lisbon was the like for those that come from the Indieses; but since the War, Amsterdam hath as it were monopolised all the Merchandizing both of Europe and the Indieses; and hath almost quite undone both Antwerp and Lisbon; by reason whereof the concourse of vessels to that is city very great: Rotterdam is held the next place for traffic in Holland. Here are likewise at all times great store of shipping, and many ships are here built, it being one of the chiefest Arsenals of Holland: neare to Rotterdam lies Dort drowned as it were in a large channel of the Sea, a City whereunto many ships do also continually resort. Neare to Amsterdam upon the same Gulf of Zuyde●zee which hath been spoken of, many other good Towns lie frequented by great and numerous Vessels, but especially Enchusen, a place famous for building of shipping: many other Towns of Holland by reason of the Arms of the Sea, are very full of ships; and because Holland is environed almost every where by the Sea, and that the water stands there in many places, because many Rivers run through it, and the Channels therein cut by hand, which always are very full of Vessels; some have wittily said that there are more houses in Holland on the water then in the land: as for the shipping in Zealand, great store are built there likewise, and specially belonging to the City of Midleburg, which is the chief City of that Province. Flushing is likewise a very famous Po●● Town in Zealand; and because this Town lies more forward in the Sea then Midleburg, it may be termed the Gate which opens and shuts up the entrance into Zealand: In this Haven there are therefore always many Vessels, and hither come those first, which come for Zealand. Many ships likewise are set out from Friesland, and particularly from Harlinghem, a famous Haven which looks towards Holland. The great abundance of all things necessary for them, is answerable to this their store of shipping: and that which is the greatest wonder is, that Holland which abounds most in all these things, doth not produce almost any of them from within herself: there doth not grow any corn of whatsoever sort in Holland; yet Europe hath not a more plentifulf Granary: Not flax grows in Holland, yet from thence doth issue an infinite deal of linen cloth: no wool comes from Holland, yet is there great store of cloth made there: There are no woods in Holland, yet this Province builds more ships then almost all Europe besides: Holland abounds within itself with cattle, with fish, and all things made of milk; which being salted, and great provision made thereof, their ships are plentifully provided therewith: like provision is likewise made of all other sorts of Victuals necessary for life, of cloth for wearing, of sail clotheses for sailing, and of all things else which belong to Navigation; so as there is not only nothing wanting in the United Provinces of what is necessary for setting forth whatsoever number of ships, but a great superaboundance thereof. Than for the number of Mariners, who are the animated Instruments of Navigation, they yield not in number to the other unanimate necessaries. The People of Holland and Zealand do generally betake themselves to one of two professions, either to Merchandizing or Seafaring; and because both these Provinces are very full of Inhabitants, especially Holland, there are enough left for Sea affairs. All the Inhabitants of Zealand except those of Midleburg, are Mariners; their number is infinite in Amsterdam, as in the most Merchant Towns which are situated on the Sea; and in this Province the Rivers and Channels may be said to be the habitations of these sort of men; to which in nature and in profession an infinite number of Fishermen do correspond. But after all this, how great and how miraculous is their Skill in Navigation? The People of those parts are naturally more addicted to sea, then to landlord Affairs. The very Children suck in the precepts of Navigation with their Mother's milk; and every house in Holland and Zealand may be said to be a School thereof: when they have run over the more neighbouring seas in their younger years, being grown more strong, they betake themselves to plough up the farther deeps, till by their continual Navigation having measured every Angle of the Ocean, they dare venture even upon the taming of the fury or tempest thereof. There is no Climate, Star, nor wind which they are not well acquainted with: They are bred up in these sorts of Labours and sufferings; and triumphing, as it were, over even Nature itself, contrary to the Laws thereof they join together the farthest distant Seas; carry the one Pole to the other, and making one Hemisphere of two, they join together, not only in Commerce, but as it were in one place, the farthest remote Nations of the Earth. Thus by their so many singular successes in Sea-affairs, especially by their Navigation in the Indieses, but chief by the attempt which the Hollanders and Zealanders made, not many years ago, towards the Northern parts of the Frozen sea, their renown is grown so great throughout the whole World, as they may be said to have clouded the glory of all other Nations. These People did not apply themselves in former times in sailing to the Indieses; the Spaniard did not permit them so to do, till the War was commenced; and after it was begun, they being suffered notwithstanding to frequent the Spanish Seas, they were contented with this neare and moderate gain, rather then to adventure upon vast and immoderate Traffic, which was to be fetched from new Seas, and from new and unknown Winds. The Rebels of Holland were afterwards forbidden by the Spaniards to come near any of their Ports. Irritated therefore by despair of losing at once the Commerce with Spain, and their share of that of the Indieses, the Hollanders and Zealanders resolved to venture of themselves into those so remote parts. Nor did they make any long delay: They furnished out some few ships at first, and putting to Sea; made towards the South, and then turning towards the East, they with much courage ended so long and toilsome a Voyage. This their first Adventure did not notwithstanding prove very fortunate, nor much gainful to them: but having much better success in their after-Voyages, they in a short time rendered those Seas so familiar to their People, that they go now to the East-indieses with as much ease, as if they went for Pastime from one of their own Ports to another. But this so great a daring ended not here: nor were they contented to have addressed their Designs to the commerce of the Indieses. After they had found out this new way of Traffic, and after having brought by many Voyages an inestimable Treasure of Spicery into Holland, to the great prejudice of the Crown of Spain, they had courage enough oftentimes to insult over the Portugals in those Seas, and even to besiege them within those Towns and Cities which had been by them alone for so many years peacefully possessed. They likewise have sailed into the West Indies, but they cannot as yet get any admittance there, meeting with greater difficulties and more obstacles, for that it is almost totally populated with Spanish Colonies; yet had not the Truce ensued, they had designed to have raised new Forces that they might get footing there likewise; to the end that they might continually infested those Seas, and the firm land; and have a narrower watch upon the Spanish Fleet, which if it should at any time fall into their hands, the Spaniards would thereby assuredly receive a greater blow then they have done at any time before: by what hath been said, it may be comprehended how great the strength of the United Provinces is by Sea, and what advantages they are likely to make thereby upon all occasions. CHAP. VIII. Of the Revenue, and Expenses of the United Provinces. IT now remains that we see what moneys the United Provinces receive, and how they lay them out; it is commonly judged that in time of War, according to the greater or lesser occasions of expense, they contribute one year with another eight millions of Florins, for the service of their general Union, which amounts to the sum of 3200000 Crowns, at the rate of five shillings a Crown, in this common disbursement every Province contributed its particular proportion, according to the utmost of their abilities, unless it were some moneys which by the way of common hostility in the time of War was gathered in common from the whole Union: All hostility being now at an end by the Truce, this kind of Tax doth likewise cease. In time of War also, because all the Ports of Flanders were continually besieged by the Ships of the United Provinces, all Foreign Merchandise were unloaded in Holland and in Zealand, to the great profit of those two Provinces in particular, and to the great advantage of the General Union: Whereas now the Seas being open, much Merchandise will certainly be hereafter brought into the Ports of Flanders: The Union hath not now almost any income by the way of common disbursement; and therefore the moneys which the United Provinces contribute for the expense of the whole Union, consist in what is raised severally from every one of them. The United Provinces raise almost all their moneys by way of impositions; which to say truth are so great there, as they cannot well be greater; but the People bear them patiently! Their Liberty could not long endure without Arms, nor their arms without stipends, nor their stipends without impositions; and the United Provinces will always so apprehended the Power of Spain, as they will easily be persuaded to be always prepared for War, that so they may the easilyer evade all new hazards. The moneys which are raised in common from the said Provinces, are contributed as hath been said, according to the possible abilities of each of them. Holland which is the greatest and richest of all the rest, contributes the one half of the whole: next to Holland, Zealand is Taxed heavier then any of the other six; and the other concur with their convenient proportions: For example sake; of a hundred Holland furnisheth fifty; Zealand about twenty; Friesland twelve; and the rest with very little difference the remainder. The moneys must needs be very great which the United Provinces spend in their common interest, their Country being considered, which is but of a small circuit; besides every Province reserves a proportion for several occasions of their own; but Traffic makes good what is wanting in Land; and the commodiousness of the Sea, supplies their narrowness of ground; and the industry of the Inhabitants, the defects of Nature. They manage their moneys to the best advantage, their Army which may be said to exhausted the whole, is paid with many limitations; in paying of the Soldiery they accounted forty days to the month, so as their Military year falls very short in months. The United Provinces use not those entertainments, nor those advantages of Pay which are used in the King of Spain's Army; so as their salary being limited, they are well paid, and their Soldiers do not mutiny; and consequently they are not subject to such disorder of Mutiny, as the Spaniards are, by which the Crown of Spain hath been greatly indammaged. All the moneys of the General Union are laid out as hath been said, in the maintenance of their Militia; and 'tis thought that the United Provinces in time of Truce do disburse therein 2800000 crowns a year. The said Provinces are much indebted to France and England for moneys which they have received from those two Crowns upon several occasions in time of War; and they also upon the same Terms own great sums upon Interest to divers Merchants of their own Country. Every Province apart hath their particular Revenues, as also their particular expenses: Holland, Zealand and Friesland, are at great expense in maintaining their Banks and Channels, that they may keep their Country as dry and passable as they can; but Holland and Zealand are particularly at great Charges in keeping out the Sea, which doth oftentimes strangely endamage them; the Ocean appears more angry and more tempestuous on that shore then in any other part of Europe; and there you would believe the Sea and Land to be at greater variance then any where else, and that there the two Elements shown their greatest enmity one to another. THE RELATION OF THE United Provinces OF FLANDERS, Written by the Cardinal Bentivoglio. BOOK II CAP. I An Introduction briefly describing the War of Flanders. Madam de Parma is made Regent of Flanders. WHat hath been said may suffice for what concerns the Country, People, Government, Strength, Incomes; and Expenses of the United Provinces. I will now tell you how their Militia is Governed: Count Mauris of Nassaw is General of all their Soldiery; but being to speak of this Commander, who is at this time of so high esteem, it is requisite, to the end that I may the more clearly set down his Actions, that in the first place I treat of those of his Father the Prince of Orange, who hath been so much heard and spoken of in this our Age; to the which I am likewise invited by a particular desire I have by representing the Nature, Actions, and death of this Prince; to given you a breviate of the beginnings, chief events, and end of this last so long and memorable War of the Low Countries: The House of Nassaw hath its original, and still keeps its chief root in Germany, and is accounted one of the ancientest, and most noble of those parts. Out of▪ Germany come William (so was the Prince of Orange called) into Flanders when he was yet but a child, and was received into the Service of the Emperor Charles the fifth, by whose particular favour, rather then by any necessary proximity of blood, he afterwards remained heir of the House of Schalloune; and of a bore Count of Nassaw (being enriched with much wealth) come likewise by this succession to inherit the Principality of Orange in France: He together with this, acquired greater Fortunes from the Emperor: afterwards when Charles went to spend the rest of his days privately in Spain, and his Son King Philip stayed for a while in Flanders, Orange continued still in great favour with the King: Philip was likewise afterwards to return for Spain, so as it was necessary to think upon some one who might supply his place in the Government of Flanders: Two Princesses were chief in nomination thereunto; the one Christierna Duchess Dowager of Lorraine; the other Margaret, wife to Octavius Farnese, Duke of Parma; the first being Niece by the sister's side to the Emperor, the other his natural daughter. Christierna was much desired by the Nobility of the Country, as she who by the neighbourhood of Lorraine was well known in Flanders, and who by reason of the conformity of those two Countries was likely to be more gracious in her Government, and more conformable generally to the Palate of the Dutch; and the peace which chief by her means had but a little before been concluded in Cambrey, was yet fresh in their memory; and the Prince of Orange was of all others chief for the choice of Christierna; for he had some hope to mary a daughter of hers, by which means he did aspire to be the Arbitror and Moderator of her Government. On the other side, the King's officers of State were more for Margaret; 'twas thought she would be more affectionate to the King's affairs then Christierna, to whom they gave the title of a French woman, and thought her more interested in the Crown of France, in respect of Lorraine: Whereas Margaret, in respect of her nearer relation to the blood Royal, by reason of so many interests of the Family of the Fernesees in Italy, with the Crown of Spain, and for that Alexander her only son was then intended for the King's Court, as a pledge of greater dependency, was held to be wholly for the Spanish Faction. At last the considerations which made for Margaret prevailed; whereupon she was chosen, and declared to be Regent of Flanders, and to that purpose was sent for from Italy. CHAP. II The Prince of Orange his Distastes, and Nature: The first alterations in Flanders arise, and are quieted. THe Prince of Orange being nettled by this Election, An. 1559. was afterwards stung to the quick, with the obstacle which he met withal in his pretended Marriage with the Duchess of Lorain's daughter. The King did not like that one so great in Flanders, should yet become greater by this near leaning stock of Lorraine: and that instead of such alliance as might become a Subject, he should be raised to an alliance so near the King himself: nor had the Prince of Orange such a stroke in the Government afterwards with the Regent, as he willingly would have had; he therefore grew wroth within, and had a great desire to try some novelty, and therewithal to open his way to more eminent Fortune among the general innovations. The Prince of Orange was in great esteem with the Dutch; and truly he was a man of very great parts: Of a strong body, constant mind, flowing tongue, and good at counsel; he was very dextrous, and wondered vigilant; but these virtues were counterpoised with much greater vices: There was no faithfulness in him, no goodness, no shame to do evil; his religion was only outward; he was of an unquiet mind, and greatly ambitious; nor was there ever any who knew better how to wind people by deceit, nor how better to cloth his own ends with zeal to the Public. The King being returned or Spain, the first jealousy given by the Prince of Orange, was his Marrying of Anne daughter to Maurice, Elector of saxony, who was a Lutheran. Returning from Germany with his new wife to Brussels, he met not with much difficulty in ordering his pre-meditated revolutions. The people of Flanders were then much stirred up, and all the three orders of which the body of the Provinces were framed, were almost equally aggrieved. The Ecclesiastic, by a new erection of Episcopacy which resulted to the great dishonour of the Monastical Abbots, in whom the highest degree of Ecclesiastics did before consist: The order of the Nobility, because they seen they were forever to be deprived of the presence of their natural Prince, and to fall into the Government of a Foreigner, wherein the too great and too Imperious authority which the Cardinal Granville held with the Regent, appeared to them to be in particular too intolerable: The Popular order; for that the people of Flanders being accustomed to live in much liberty, and many of them being there upon fallen into the licentiousness of Heresy, they could not endure the new rigour of the public edicts, against such as were infected, which rigour was termed by the hateful title of the Spanish Inquisition. The nobles were they who first blew the coal in public, which till then went secretly creeping on; and the first flame was hindled by Meyn here 〈◊〉, by a licentious petition, which he and Count Lod●vick, brother to the Prince of Orange, accompanied by a great many others of the Nobility, presented to the Regent: They instanced therein with peremptory words, for moderation in the regal edicts, and that all use of the Inquisition should be taken away: this licentiousness of the Nobility, was the birth of a popular commotion which ensued not long after. A number of the base ●●ort of people gathered together in divers places, but chief in An●werp, who grew so bold, as impudently ●o violate Churches, beaten down Altars, break Images, and to introduce that Heresy bore faced, which till then had hiddenly, and in secret been the cause of the evils; which were not notwithstanding then so great, but that sufficient remedies were 〈◊〉 for them▪ The Regent applied at first 〈…〉 medicines as the time administered; and afterwards taking courage, she compelled Valenciennes by force to return to their due obedience. She entered herself, in person also, armed into Antwrep, and reduced it and many other Cities into their former rule of Government. The first commotions in Flanders seemed to be as soon extinguished, as raised, when news was brought that the King's anger was rekindled against the Dutch, and that the Duke of Alva was chosen to put his rigour in execution. The Prince o● Orange had always temporised with the Regent; but when he heard that the Duke of Alva was on his march, and drew near, he openly discovered his mind, and retired into Germany, together with his brother Lodovick: He thought it now no longer time to temporise: he considered he might do so whilst he had to do with a Regent, who was a woman, and in the power of Dutch forces; but what security could he hope for from so great a Commander, as was the Duke of Alva, who come to execute the King's orders in the head of a Foreign Army, with his sword in his hand; what suspicions might he think his former actions had occasioned? and how many had he indeed given? And he feigned his fears to be the greater, that he might stir up greater desire of Revolutions; resolving then not to wait the arrival of the Duke's Forces, he withdrew to the parts which lay nearest Germany, that he might there wait the time which might recall him to those innovations wherewith Flanders was threatened. CHAP III The Duke of Alva succeeds the Dutchese of Parma; An. 1567. Flanders is in a rage, great part thereof do rise, and the War is kindled. THe Duke of Alva entered the Low-countrieses the year 1567., bringing with him a powerful Army, all of them being almost Spaniards; more powerful in valour then umber of men. He took upon him the Government; his first intentions were to secure such of the Nobility and Cities as he most suspected; he therefore forthwith imprisoned Count Egm●nt, and Count Hern, together with many others of the Nobility of that Country; and prepared heavy yokes of Citadels for many Cities, which were of greatest consideration, either for their situation or for their Inhabitants: the first and chiefest was that of Antwerp, and to the yoke of Citadels, he added the bridle of armed Garrisons. These so rigorous Foundations of Government being laid by the Duke, it remained to see what commotions might thereby be made as well within as without Flanders; there were great dangers both within and without. From France to boot with the wont jealousies which the Spaniards received from this neighbourhood, they had reason then to doubt the faction of the Heretics, who with very great Forces kept that Kingdom then infested and troubled. The Queen of England conspiring likewise with the Huguenots of France, had the same design of fomenting the Heresy and Rebellion of the Low Countries, and to do what in her lay to bereave the Spaniard quite of them, to the end that her Kingdom might be free from the nighbourhood of this suspected power. Such Heretical Princes of Germany as were nearest, affrighted by the example of the Dutch, and apprehending lest the slavery which was introduced upon those of Flanders, might be extended even into Germany, did readily agreed in the same thoughts and Counsels; these were the dangers from abroad; but those at home were of no lesle importance, for that the Dutch differing from the Spaniards so much in Climate, in Customs and in Laws, and that Nation being so incensed against this by reason of what had happened of new, it was plainly seen, that the Dutch would only for bear rising till they might have occasion of discovering themselves. The first dangers arose from without; the Prince of Orange and his brother Lodovick, were retired as hath been said into Germany; neither were they then idle. Their Family was greatly allied and adhered unto in those parts, and they won easy belief to their reigned and specious pretences, wherewith under the title of the common good, they coloured their departure from Flanders, and their private ends: it was not long ere they took up Arms▪ and Lodovick was the first who carried the War into Friesland, wherein he proved very fortunate: Count Are●berg who was sent against him by the Duke of Alva with great Forces was routed, and himself slain in battle: The Duke being hereat moved, resolved to go himself in person to fight, and drive out Lodovick; having first caused the heads of Count Egmont and Count Horn to be strucken of at B●ussels; the Army was instantly on its march, and speedily led into Friesland; where the Duke's arrival, fight and victory, was one and the same things; so as Lodovick being defeated, and made to fly, he retired again to Germany. But the Prince of Orange had again prepared a more important war against the Duke: He not long after entered the Country with a powerful Army which he had raised in Germany; which being increased by Huguenot Forces from France, after he had in vain laboured to get some men from Liege, he stayed in Brabant, hoping assuredly to raise some insurrections thereabouts, and to get footing in some chief City; but for that time he failed in his design; for he found the Duke of Alva on his Front, who having the art of encamping and conquering without the expense of blood, did in a short time drive him out of the Country. The Duke returned in triumph into Brussels: and if he had been pleased after the punishments he had inflicted within the Town, and the Victories he had brought from abroad, to have temporised and mitigated the rigour of his Government, there had been great hopes that the affairs of Germany might have been accommodaed in some convenient manner, and the signs thereof grew already greater by a general pardon sent from the King; when the Duke being inexorable, would not revoke the resolution he had taken of laying some new and unaccustomed Impositions upon all the goods, as well movable as immovable, which were in the Country. The Dutch thought it then too hard that they should not only undergo, but that themselves should nourish the slavery, which by so many several ways the Duke of Alva would introduce among them; who till that time were want to live without almost any grievances, and to be governed as Free men. The rise in the Low Countries being then become inevitable, the first thunder thereof was heard in Zealand: Than Holland beginning to move, and many of the Cities which were situated on the confines of France, the People flew out into fury every where, and ran to take up Arms. Lodovick took the City of Mouse, one of the chiefest which lay towards France; and his brother the Prince of Orange prepared the mean while to enter the Country a second time, with as powerful an Army as was the first. The Duke of Alva, environed with so many difficulties, and floating between the importance and diversity of resolutions, whither he were to seize upon Holland and Zealand, which by reason of the sea were the Provinces of greatest consideration; or those Cities situate upon the confines of France, which were exposed to the danger they were threatened with by the Hagonets of that Kingdom; at last the greatest being that which was to be feared from France, prevailed He then made his son Frederick encamp with the flower of his Army about Mons; and he himself come thither afterwards together with the Duke of Medina Celi, who was come not long before by Sea from Spain, to succeed him in the Government. The Siege began luckily; the succours of the French Hugonots were routed and discomfeited on the one side; and it was ended with like success, the other succour which was brought from Germany by the Prince of Orange, being likewise repulsed and brought into great straitss; but though Orange could not relieve Mons, yet did not his entrance into the Country prove altogether uneffectuall: for before he attempted to relieve that Town, he had taken Rur●monde in Ghelderland, Malines, and many other Towns; and this his second breaking in, had caused great commotions among the People; he afterwards retired, not having men enough to keep the field; and having soon lovall that he had won, he withdrew himself, rather in a fugitive then conquered posture into Holland, wherein and in Zealand, by the advantage of the Sea, and Rivers, together with the pertenaciousness of those people, and the Au●hority which he had there as Governor of both those Provinces, he laid the chief seat of the War, and of his designs. The whole body of the Insurrection and of the War being then reduced into Holland and Zealand, very memorable actions happened in both those Provinces. In Zealand the succoor which was brought by Christopher Mandragones', one of, the most cried up Commanders of the Spanish Nation at that time; to the besieged of Turgoes, were the most remarkable actions of war, which we read of either in ancient or modern History; He with a strength of Spaniards, and Soldiers of some other Nations, at a low ebb passed over an Arm of the Sea six miles broad, and after having valiantly overcome a● the difficulties of the contrary party, which were judged not to be possibly overcome he at last to his great glory brought in the relief in Holland, besides other successes, the siege of Harlem was very famous; it was eight months in dispute whither the constancy of the besiegers or the besieged would prove the greater; but those within the Town yielded at the last, and underwent such punishments, as a fatal memory remained ever after in Holland, both of this success, and of the Duke of Alva, whose Government soon after ended. CHAP. IV. The Duke of Alva's departure; he is succeeded by the Commendador Maggior of Castille, who dies. THe Duke of Medina being astonished to see the affairs of Flanders in so turbulent a condition, refused the Government thereof. Don Luis de Rechusens was then Governor of Milan, he was Commendador Maggior of Castil●, and great was the opinion of his valour. The King commanded him to succeed the Duke of Alva, who at his first entrance into Flanders, resolved by the moderation of his Government, to make the Duke of Alva's rigidness be forgotten; but as wounds ill cured at first, usually become uncurable, so, so many and so putrid, were the humours whereof the insurrection of the Low Countries were composed, as hardly any cure could be applied thereunto. Neither swords, nor lenetives could any longer avail. The pertenaciousness and daring of the Rebels growing still greater, it behoved the Commendador to try whither he could tame them by the sword or not; the events were various; but those at sea, or in the rivers by the Spanish against the Maretine forces of Holland and Zealand, proved unfortunate to the Spaniard, so as ere long the Commendador seen himself quite bereft of those two Provinces. These losses were in part restored by the rout which was given neare M●ck in Ghelderland to Count Lodovick; who together with his brother Henry, and Christopher Count Palatin of Rhine, was entered the County again with some Germane Forces; his Army was routed; and he, his brother and Christopher all three slain, to the great honour of the Spanish Commanders, to whom so important a Victory cost the loss of but very little blood; but they reaped but little good thereby, by reason of the mutiny which not long after broke out among the Spanish Soldiers for want of pay: After the battle at Mock, the memorable siege of Leyden in Holland succeeded: The Spaniards had already brought them within the Town into great straitss, when they found themselves without, to be in very great danger. The Hollander took a desperate advice to relieve Leyden by cutting many rivers into one, whereby they drowned a great part of the Country, and so at last relieved the Town by water, which they could not do by land; and the City was freed from the siege, the besiegers becoming the besieged, and many of them perished in the waters. There were some hopes at this time of putting an end to their troubles by some fair accommodation. The Emperor Radulphus appeared therein, who sent Ambassadors to Flanders to this end; but this endeavour proved quickly vain, the Hollanders and their adherents being become too contumacious, and suffering themselves to be too easily carried away by the Prince of Orange his artifices, whereby he wrought so, as those just conditions of Peace propounded on the King of Spain's behalf were not admitted of. They consisted chief of two points; that the Rebels should return to their due obedience to their King, and that they should restore the Roman Catholic Religion into its former condition. Upon these conditions, the King offered to satisfy the rebels in all the other principal concernments, as in taking away all foreiners; in taking away all garrisons and Impositions, and in restoring them to their Privileges and former government. The rebels did not openly deny obedience to the King; but that they might not return unto their allegiance, propounded difficulties not to be answered nor overcome, and for what concerned their Religion, they went about to justify their old intentions by various pretences; particularly by affirming that Holland and Zealand would be in a great measure unpeopled, if all they were to go from thence who whereof the reformed Religion, as they termed it. All Treaties of peace being thus suddenly cut of, the War continued on all sides, and it was ennobled in particular by two new enterprises of the Spaniards in Zealand, like to that first of Mand●agones: The Spaniard did thus, not only in despite of nature, but even of their enemies, keep footing in Holland and in Zealand, where in a few days the Commendador died of a Violent Fever. CHAP V The Council of State takes the Government upon them. THe Commendador being dead, the Council of State took upon them the administration, but little good was to be expected from the dividing of that Authority into many, which was united into one alone; and the fidelity of divers of the Council began already to be apparently corrupted, and it was soon known that they joined in the conspiracy with the Prince of Orange; by means of the said Prince, some of the chief of the Council who stood firmly for the King and Spanish Interest, were quickly made Prisoners,; whereupon the Council turned all their resolutions, to enforce the Spaniards to quit the Low-Conntreys; to boot with the first dislike which the Dutch had in general of the Spaniards; those of the Council made use of a new pretence, that they might with the greater resolution prosecute their designs: which was, that the Spaniards had made themselves masters of the Town of Alosto, in the very Province of Flanders, after a great many of them had again mutinied with danger of much prejudice to the Country thereby. They were then by public declaration of the whole Council, all of them proclaimed Rebels; and the people in all parts risen up in Arms against them; upon the same pretence they betook themselves to besiege the best Forts which were guarded by the Spaniards; and unless it were the Citadel of Antwerp, all their Forts fell into the hands of the Dutch, who had joined their Forces together to that purpose. Another practice of importance yet remained to end the business, wherein the Prince of Orange used his utmost skill▪ which was, That all the Provinces of the Low Countries should be reconciled in one, and to join together with Holland and Zealand, and that they should all unanimously provide for the common Interest. The Deputies of all the Provinces except, Luxembourg, etc. convened together to this purpose in Gaunt, which is the chiefest City of Flanders, and concluded the peace which went afterwards by the name of Gaunt. The chief Articles thereof were, that all Foreigners were to be driven out by the Common Arms; that they should endeavour to get the King to restore them to their first Government; that for what concerns Religion, except Holland and Zealand, all the other Provinces should suffer no other Religion to be exercised in them save what was Roman Catholic; and that the results of matters of Religion in those two particular Provinces, should be reserved to be determined by the States General, which were to meet as soon as might be. The Prince of Orange thought it impossible that the King of Spain should approve of this peace, and therefore firmly believed that all the other Provinces would very speedily join in the same Insurrection with Holland and Zealand. The Spaniards this mean while met together from many parts, and resolving to be roundly revenged of the Dutch, who had declared them to be Rebels, and exposed them as it were to a public and general slaughter, went towards the Citadel of Antwerp. They rested very few hours of the day, and were very weary when they come thither, notwithstanding without taking any manner of rest, they with one accord resolved either to die, or sup that very night in Antwerp; they made no long delay: they marched out of the Citadel in good order to the number of about 3000. and gave on with such resolution and force upon the Enemy's trenches, who in great numbers besieged the Citadel on that ●ide which lay towards the Town, as the breaking through them and making them fly, was one and the same action, and effected as soon as begun. The Spaniards sufficiently glutted with the blood of their Enemies, went presently to sack the City, wherein they spent three whole days, and which was the occasion of those great miseries, and calamities which might satisfy the hatred, revenge, lust and avarice of the prevailing side. CHAP. VI Don John of Austria comes unexpectedly into Flanders, and dies suddenly. THe Affairs of Flanders stood thus, An. 1577. When news come that Don john of Austria, natural brother to the King was unexpectedly arrived in the Loyl Country of Luxemburg; his arrival did strangely stagger all those that were desirous of novelty, but especially the Prince of Orange; he seen that Don john being of the blood Royal, having won so great renown in Spain in the War against the Moors, and in the memmorable Naval fight of Lepanto, being besides of a quick wit, and attracting demeanour; he seen I say that by his means, the Low Countries might easily be reduced into a peaceable condition, which did not correspond with Orange his ends; his first endeavour therefore was, to keep Don john from being admitted to have the Government; and he hoped to effect it, for that he thought he would never consent to the peace of Gaunt: but here his hopes failed him, by reason of the agreement made between Don john and the Provincial States in Marchia, a Town in Luxemb●rg, wherein he approved of the peace of Gaunt, and all the Spaniards and other Foreigners were forthwith sent away, except some Dutch who wanted their pay. After this agreement at Marchia, Don john was received with great pomp and rejoicing into Brussels; but the quiet which was hereupon hoped for, lasted but for awhile; it was not to be believed that Don john would have again betaken himself to force, he not having any Arms, and being absolutely in the hands of the Dutch; yet such was the cunning used by the Prince of Orange, partly by cavilling at the Articles of Agreement of Marchia, and partly in laying the delay of not dispatching away the Germane, which he could not so suddenly do for want of pay, to Don john's default, as the said Don john found himself presently to be much suspected, and in danger of inevitable treacheries against his person. The Lady Margaret of Valois Queen of Navarre, went casually at this time to the Bath of the Spa; Don john would not let the so opportune an occasion, but departing from Brussels under pretence of Compliment to the Queen, he possessed himself at unawares of the Castle of Namures, a City which confines upon the Country of Luxemburg on that side which lies towards France, and there secured himself; yet many were then of opinion, that this resolution of making himself master of that Castle was cunningly infused into Don john by the Prince of Orange himself, to make him thereby the more suspicious, and so the affairs might the easilyer return to their former troubles; nor did this his design prove vain. This was interpreted a declaring of War, whereupon the whole Country fell again into commotion on a sudden, and arms were again taken up on all sides, and the Foreign Forces which were already dismissed by the King returning speedily from Italy, the battle of Geblurs, near unto Namures not long after ensued, where Don john with little more then a thousand Foot and a thousand Horse (whilst the rest of his Forces, were hastening to the place of Battle) did miraculously defeat the Dutch Army which consisted of sixteen thousand foot, and three thousand horse, yet did not Orange for all this desist from pursuing his designs: he was already seated in place of supreme authority by the rebels by whom with unwonted demonstrations of honour he was in a triumphant manner received first in Antwerp, and then in Brussels, Orange after this defeat; had recourse to his subtlest stratagems; Germany, England and France, being much affrighted by the Spanish Forces, he drew down a great Army from Germany, led on by john Cassimer Palatin, wherein the Queen of England assisted with great sums of money, and made many French Forces move under the Duke of Allasonne, who was brother to the King of France, and whom the Rebels received under the title of their Protector; and that unwonted Novelties might not be wanting in this Insurrection, the Archduke Mathias, Nephew to the King of Spain, was privily come a little before from Vienna, moved thereunto by a youthful spirit of ambition, by the mere authority of the rebels, and of the Prince of Orange, who was assigned unto him for his Lieutenant; he had taken upon him the Title of Governor for the King, of the Provinces of Flanders, and was prepared to led on the Enemies Forces against Don john, who was indeed the true Governor. This mean while Don john had got into a very great strength neare unto Man●res, resolving to dissolve this cloud of Forces which overhung him on all sides, and thus to get the greater glory by getting the victory without fight; as happily fell out not long after; but he died first, and so was too soon bereft of the fruit of the first victory already gotten, and of this second so well ordered. Don john died of a few days sickness, not without suspicion of being poisoned. He was a Prince worthy to have lived longer, and to have longer tried whither he could with his sword have cut of the Hydra's head of the rebellion of Flanders, which after become invincible. The Rebels Forces disbanding soon after for want of pay, Cassimers' Forces returned to Germany, and another thing happ'nd afterwards much to the advantage of the King's affairs: which was, that the Walloun● Provinces, when they had discovered the Prince of Orange his perfidious ends and those of the rest of the Rebels, which were, totally to withdraw themselves from the obedience of the King of Spain, and of the Catholic Church, they framed a faction apart (whereat the P●ince of Orange stormed, and did in vain endeavour to hinder it) under the name of Malcontents, whereby they signified that they were but ill satisfied, yet would not be Rebels, either to the King or Church. CHAP VII. The Prince of Parma succeeds Don John; the Rebels receive the Duke of Alanzonne for their new Prince: the Prince of Orange is wounded by a musquet-shot. THis mean while the Prince of Parma succeeded Don john in the Government of Flanders; An. 1578. who let not slip any good occasion; but making use of the division which he found among the enemies themselves, and getting the better of them at first by the weapons of their own discords, he easily gained the faction of the Malcontents, and also come to agreement with the Walloon Provinces: This so advantageous Treaty being so luckily succeeded, and the Prince having suddenly furnished himself of the valiant Catholic Forces of the Country, the resolution which was made with the consent of the same Provinces, of fetching back the Spaniards, and other Foreigners, which the Prince in order to the agreement was enforced to sand the second time out of the Country succeeded likewise fortunately. He had at the same time valiantly besieged and taken the City of Mastricht, whereby he secured himself of the pass from Germany, and the mean time was ordering an Army for other enterprises; at this time likewise a new Negotiation of peace was in Treaty in Cullen, wherein the Pope's Nuntio, some Imperial Ambassadors of the Prince of Castlevetrano, on the King of Spain's behalf, and some Deputies in the name of those Provinces which joined in the Insurrection, did intervene; some tolerable composition of the affairs in Flanders was desired in Spain, regard being always had to the Catholic Religion and to the Regal Authority; but all their diligence proved at last vain: so many were the difficulties which were met withal in the Treaty, and so inestricable had the Prince of Orange made them by his usual cunning. The Treaty at Cullen proving vain, the King thought he could now not longer forbear the last demonstration of his just anger against the Prince of Orange; he proclaimed him to be guilty of high Treason, the Head and Author of the rebellion in the Low Countries, the public bane and chief Author of all the Evils; the Prince of Orange hereat incensed, flew presently to desperate Counsels; and laying aside the first pretended colour of the War which was that they fought not against the King, but against the pride and tyranny of the Spaniards, as he and those that sided with him termed it, he began barefaced to deny obedience to the King, and easily induced his followers to do the like, and to provide themselves of a new Prince. The Duke of Alanzon was thought the fittest of all others for this purpose, out of hopes that they might engage the King of France in the Duke's Interest: whereupon the Duke was received into Antwerp, and with public solemnity sworn Prince of the Low Countries. Orange had no particular affection to the French; but he endeavoured and hoped to keep up the Rebellion of Flanders by means of the French Forces, and to handle the business so, as the Dutch growing at last weary of the French, and despairing of ever being pardoned by the Spaniard, they might come to frame a Free Government, whereof he might be the Moderator and Arbitror: in which variety of successes, if more favoured by Fortune, he could not get to be made absolute Prince of all the Revolted Provinces, he hoped that he might yet prove to be so in Holland and in Zealand; two strong and powerful Provinces, infected with Heresy already, and which now acknowledged no other Authority then his. These were the ends to which it was thought Orange his blind Ambition did tend; the joyful presages of Alansonne the new Prince did this mean while forbade no good to his hopes; for at the same time a bold Bischayard come to him, and within his own House discharged a Musket at his head. He was cured of this wound, but this foretold another of the like sort, which not long after was the occasion of his death. CHAP. VIII. The Rebels are brought into great straitss. Alanzonne withdraws into France, and soon after the Pr. of Orange is slain. THis mean while the Affairs of the Rebels grew worse and worse, An. 1582. & those on the King's behalf went on still prosperously. The Archduke Mathias had lost all his hopes a good while before; so as he was forced to return into Germany with no great Reputation. Alanzon was likewise weary of the Dutch, and the Dutch of him: Neither could the Duke bear with the indignity of the Conditions, whereby he become rather to receive Laws, then to given them in such form of Government as was prescribed him; nor yet could the Dutch tolerate that the French aids should correspond so badly with the promises made by the Duke. The Duke was the first that began to stir; He endeavoured to take Antwerp by force, and to establish his Principality by Arms: Some of his People had already entered the City, and began to pillage it; but the People betaking themselves to their Arms, the French were presently driven out with no less slaughter then dishonour: Nor was it possible, for all that the Prince of Orange could do, (who thought the present alteration not yet ripe enough for his ends) that the Dutch could be brought to forgo the ill will which they had conceived against the French; so as ere long the Duke was necessitated to return for France, without any reputation or hope, and his people abased and but ill treated. The Prince of Orange after these affairs had shut himself up in Holland, with his mind wholly bend to found out some fuel whereby to keep alive the fire of Rebellion, which was already so well kindled; when at once the blow come, which cut both his Designs and his Life short. He that wounded him was a Burgonian, and the wound was given by a Pistol, which he desperately discharged at his Head. This happened at Delfe, where the Prince of Orange then was, who died almost presently upon it, not being able to speak a word. This was the end of William of Nassaw Prince of Orange, in the 52. year of his Age. A man who without doubt might have been numbered among the famousest of our Times, if resting contented with his own so considerable Fortune, he had not by violence and illegal means endeavoured to raise himself to a greater. He died reputed an Heretic; and which is more, not thought to have any Religion at all in him. He professed Liberty of Religion and Government, that he might the better invegle the People, and under the name of Liberty oppress it the more; Those that sided most with him, were the Hollanders and Zealanders; and his chiefest Authority lay in those two Provinces; which was so great, as he appeared rather to be Prince thereof then Governor; and 'twas said, that they had resolved to choose him for their Prince. CHAP. IX.. The Rebels continued in their first Obstinacy; The Duke of PARMA dies. THe Rebels were astonished and much confused by the Prince of Orange his death; and 'twas thought then that the whole Fabric of Rebellion would fall to the Ground, the Architecture failing; but the foundations thereof were already too deeply laid: which that they might be the more firm and stable, there wanted not Princes, who jealous of the too neare Neighbourhood of the Spaniard, brought such materials as were needful. The pertenacity of the Rebels increasing thus, rather then diminishing by the Prince of Orange's death, they were so far from listening to any thing that might tend to a reconciliation, as they resolved to continued the War even to the last Gasp, rather then ever to return to be under the command of Spain. The first thing they did after the Prince of Orange his death, was to honour his memory with solemn Pomp and Obsequys. And presently substituted Count Maurice, his Son, in his Father's Honours and Titles, believing firmly that he would prove true Heir and Successor to his Father, as well in his affection to them, as in his hatred to the Crown of Spain. Prince Maurice was then a Youth of Sixteen years old; and therefore Count Hollack was given unto him for his Lieutenant in the War: who afterwards by marrying a Sister of his, become his Brother-in-Law. The King of Spain's Forces were this mean while Victorious in all places: Tornay, Odenard, Ypre, Dankerk, Newport, and many other Towns of importance in Flanders and other parts, were recovered by the Prince of Parma; the City of Groninghen, and many other Towns towards Friesland were already returned to the King's obedience; and the Catholic Forces had made good progress on all sides. Only Antwerp made resistance, & did a little retard them: but the difficulty of the siege of Antwerp made for the Prince his Glory, since the greater the Obstacles were which he met withal in managing the siege, his valour appeared to be the greater in reducing it at the last. He mastered the River of Schelde with his famous Stecata: He with great Military worth, hindered Relief from being brought to the Town by any other way; and frustrated the mighty Machines of a great Ship, and certain Boats with Fireworks, which with an ill Omen they termed, The Wars end, for they made no long Resistance afterwards. This memorable Siege lasted almost a whole year. By reason of the danger that Antwerp was in; Gaunt, Bruges and Malines, were already fallen into the Prince his hands; so as the Rebels were never in so bad a Condition as then; nor the King's Affairs in greater Reputation. The Rebels were afterwards reinheartned by the Queen of England's protection, who craftily endeavouring to oppress those her neighbours, which she boasted to assist as oppressed, sent the Earl of Leicester over with a whole Army to assist them, and wrought herself into their Government and Towns, whereof some in the most important situations of Holland and Zealand were delivered up unto her as cautionary. Her daring increased together with her ambition, upon the unhappy success which befell a Fleet at Sea, which the King of Spain had sent against her Kingdom; but the Dutch Rebels began quickly to be weary of the English yoke; and it was not long till being glutted and grown jealous of Leicester and his Government, they took from him the managing of those Arms, and forced him to return to England, to the Queens no little indignation. Count Mauris was this mean while increased in years, and together with his years the opinion of his valour increased; so as the whole care of the War was committed to him: Mauris from that time began to grow famous in the Military profession. He with great celerity won almost the whole Country which the Spaniards possessed beyond the Rhine, from whence 'twas always easier then from any other part, to penetrate even into the very bowels of the Enemies, more particularly in Holland, the chief seat of their Rebellion. Thus the Spaniards, whilst they busy themselves too much in the Civil wars of France, receive these important losses in their own Provinces of Flanders. The Duke of Parma (for so he was now become by reason of his Father's death) resisted as much as he could) his going into France; but he must obey the King's Orders, which were sent unto him too positively from Spain: In the first passage the Duke relieved Paris, and in the second Roan, in both which succours he won great Fame; and whilst he prepared to return a third time into France, he died at Arras: He was indeed so valiant, and so cried-up a Commander, as through him chief the Forces of our times may pass for glorious, and by his means vie with the famousest of any other age. CHAP. X. Three Governors succeed in the space of three years in the Government of Flanders, to wit, Count Mansfielt, the Archduke Ernestus, and Count Fuentes. THe Duke of Parma being dead, the Government remained in Count Peter Ernestus Mantsfielt; he had exercised the place in the Dukes two first go into France, and held it one year after, chief by the Autho●ity and Council of Count Fuentes, who upon the Duke's death was come from Spain into Flanders; but the Government remained not long in him: The King's affairs suffered then great prejudice, many of his Soldiers mutenyed, foregoing all obedience and respect to their Commanders and discipline, remained so corrupted, as continual mutinies did ensue almost always afterwards in the A●my, to the Kings so great damage, as he was oftentimes more harmed by his own Forces, then by his Enemies. Hereupon Count Mauris took occasion to besiege Saint Getringberg, and begirt it with so strong fortifications, as the King lost all hopes of driving him from thence, or of relieving the besieged. The Government which provisionally was exercised by Count Mansfielt was afterwards confirmed absolutely in the Archduke Ernestus, who whilst he thought rather to remedy the disorders he found in the King's affairs, then to gain upon the enemy, died before the first year of his Government was fully ended: in which time Mauris continuing his advancing, took the City of Groni●gben, and did thereby the better establish what he had won beyond the Rhine. Another part of the Catholic Army did then again mutiny, and the King's Soldiers from being the chastisers of Rebels becoming as it were Rebels themselves; they were not ashamed to maintain their mutiny even with the borderds of the Enemy, till such time as they were largely paid. Hereupon Count Fuentes took the Government into his hands, and valour and success seemed in him to be at strife; he turned the King's Forces towards France, the better to secure that Frontier: he valiantly routed the French in the battle at Dorlan, and soon after took Cambrey by siege; driving out Baliguye a French man, who of Governor had made himself Master of the City. CHAP. XI. The Government passeth into the hands of the Cardinal Archduke Albertus, who marrying the King of Spain's daughter, goes into Spain. Cardinal Andrea of Austria remains in his Place. THe Cardinal Archduke Albertus was this mean while come from Spain, An. 1569. to take upon him the Government of the Low Countries, and the fame of the great Forces which he brought with him from Spain and Italy, brought terror into Flanders before they arrived there themselves: He come Governor and Prince of the Low Countries; Governor, if subduing the Rebels, he should again reduce them in obedience to the Crown of Spain: and Prince, if this success proving desperate, it were requisite to separate Flanders from that Crown, and put it under a Prince apart, who by inhabiting there, and by giving the People a Dutch descent, might the easilyer by fair means reunite those Provinces, and reduce them to a conformable obedience; but this at that time was kept private among the Arcana Regia. The War grew now hot between the Kings of France and Spain; and the French Forces were chief turned against Flanders; so as at the Cardinal's arrival he was necessitated to carry his Forces towards Picardy, wherein he had great good success; for he presently took two places of great importance; Calais and Ards, almost underneath the King of France his nose, neither did his progress end here. He suddenly after turned his Arms upon the Dutch Rebels, and took from them the Town of Hulst, a very strong place in Flanders; the next year, Amien's the Prime City of all Picardy was taken by the Spaniards, who whilst they endeavour in vain to keep it, and turn their Forces upon France, Count Mauris makes great progress in Flanders; he took Reimburg, and made himself Master of that so convenient Pass upon the Rhine; then marching with his Army in all diligence towards Friesland he suddenly sat down before Groll, and took it, together with Oldensall, and Linghen, and put the Rebels in possession of the whole Country on that side the Rhine. The separation of the Low Countries from the Crown of Spain was already published, by the marriage established by the King between the Archduke Albertus, and the Infanta Issabella, his eldest daughter; to which daughter of his he gave the Low Countries for her portion; which the King was at last resolved to do, when he found the resistance of the Rebels in Flanders to grow every day greater and greater: hereupon the Archduke being become the King's son in Law, and having so great a portion given him, began to buckle the closer to a peace which was then in Treaty in Flanders with the King of France; hoping by the friendship of so powerful a neighbourhood, the easilyer to reduce the Rebels to his obedience; and the desired peace ensued. The Archduke parting from thence to bring the Infanta from Spain, heard the news of his Father in Laws death before he seen his wife. Cardinal Andrea of Austria remained in this interim Governor of Flanders, and the Admiral of Arragon had the chief command in War. The Spanish Forces were never greater in Flanders then they were at this time, but it availed them but little; they only recovered Remburg, and on the contrary, the disorders of the King's Army grew to be so great by being made to winter by violence and rapine upon divers neutral Countries about the Rhine, as all that part of Germany grew into great indignation, even to the taking up of Arms. Cardinal Andrea ended his Government, having undertaken two things; the one in vain, which was the endeavouring to take Bomale, together with all that Island between the Vahall and the Mause, and the other wherein he succeeded, which was the making of a great Fort, which by his name was called the Fort of Saint Adrea, in an opportune place on the lower part of the Island, whereby he might the easilyer enjoy the passage and other commodities of that River. CHAP. XII. The two new Princes come into Flanders; The Archduke is routed, and wounded at Newport. IN this interim the two new Princes were arrived in Flanders, An. 1599 and had drawn upon them the eyes of all Europe, which stood expecting how they should be received, and what face their new Principality would put on. They were received with much applause and great expressions of joy by the obedient Provinces; but the rebellious appeared more pertenacious then ever, they prepared with all their might for War; giving out, that the Spaniards by an issueless marriage, did craftily lay bats to make them return to the yoke of Spain; and that the Archduke begirt with Spanish Council and Forces, had nothing of Governor in him, more then the appearing Title of a Prince; they were already come to the number of the Seven Provinces which was spoken of at the beginning, and had a good while before taken upon them the Title of the United Provinces, they therefore utterly refused all mention of peace; even the very endeavours of those Ambassadors which were sent to that purpose first from the obedient Provinces, and then from the Emperor. The Treaty of peace which began at this time to be handled between the King of Spain's Ministers of State, and those of the Archdukes on the one side (this was the Title which the two new Princes had taken in common) with those of the Queen of England on the other side, proved likewise vain; and many other difficulties were hereunto added, which forebode an ill augury to the new Principality of the Archdukes▪ Great scarcity of money; new mutinies among the Soldiers; very great dearth in the Country; and for height of indignity, an infamous treachery committed by the Garrison of the Fort of Saint Andrea, who sold that place unto the Rebels; neither was it long after that the Archduke received a rout at the battle of Newport; which was caused as well by the rashness of his Commanders, as by the valour of the Enemy. Maurice had landed his Army upon the seacoast of Flanders, and had suffered it to advance too far into the Archduke's Country under vain hopes of getting; so as he could not keep o● land for want of victuals; but was enforced to retreat in great confusion by sea. The Archduke's Commanders impatient to expect this secure opportunity of embarking, set upon the Enemies in their own Quarters, and precipitated themselves into the Rout which they received; wherein the Archduke was wounded and well nigh taken: It was then seen, as it hath been in many former conflicts, what Armed despair can do; for the Rebels despairing of ever embarking themselves without winning the battle, fought with incredible heat and courage; neither could Maurice have made better use of tha● occasion; causing the Ships to fall of from the land, and putting his Soldiers in excellent order; he shown them that now they must either overcome or die; so they overcame, and that place was made famous by that memorable success. The Archduke after this so great blow, was comforted by the fidelity which his new people showed unto him, and with the aid which they brought him; and he suffering himself to be persuaded by their Instances prepared to besiege Ostend; which was the only place of all Flanders that remained in the Rebels power, and which till then was held a desperate undertaking, by reason it was impossible to keep it from being relieved by Sea. Prince Maurice this mean while had again besieged and taken Reimburg; then carrying his siege suddenly to Balduke in Brabant, he thought thereby to divert the Archduke from besieging Ostend; but the enemies failing in taking of Balduke, having done their very utmost, and gathered together the greatest Army that they were ever Masters of, they resolved to use all possible means to make the Archduke rise from before Ostend. CHAP. XIII. Marquis Spinola brings Forces from Italy; the Army is put into his hands; and the War at last ends with a Truce for Twelve years. THe Archduke's affairs met with very great difficulties when Marquis Spinola arrived in Flanders with a strength of 8000 Italian foot. An. 1602. This succour kept the Enemies from bringing their Army to raise the siege of Ostend, and kept of the most important losses wherewith the Archdukes were threatened, but it was not sufficient to withstand them all; for Prince, Maurice besieged and took Graves, one of the most consideble places in all Brabant. This mean while the siege of Ostend continued: and Frederick Spinola, brother to the Marquis, had in a manner besieged it by Sea, with a Squadron of Galleys brought from Spain, whereby the Enemies would not have been a little indammaged, had not Frederick whilst he fought valiantly in a bickering at Sea been so soon slain. The siege at Ostend had already continued so long as the besiegers began to despair of ever taking it; the situation of the place, the cunning and courage of the besieged had made that place be generally held impregnable, when the undertaking was affigned over to the Marquis Spinolo, he fully satisfied expectation, his diligence was such, and so much did he despise all dangers, as the besiegers at last found themselves necessitated to yield; for they wanted ground within, though never secure without; the Town was surrendered after three years' siege; and certainly it was one of the most famous sieges that hath been heard of at any time, and the Town was as stoutly and gallantly defended; by Spinola's egregious actions in this success, 'twas seen what might be expected from him hereafter in greater enterprises. Prince Maurice was not idle this mean while, he had again besieged Balduke, and not able to compass that design, he afterwards besieged Sluice in Flanders, intending either to raise the siege of Ostend by this nearer diversion, or to counterpoise the loss of that place by taking of the other; he failed in the first, but very luckily obtained the other, which was a business of very great importance; for the situation, strength, and every other considerable circumstance of Ostend were paralleled in Sluice; which was taken within a few days, and without the loss of any blood; whereas the taking of Ostend cost so much time, so much money, and so much blood: here ended the Enemy's proceed till the Truce; which was afterwards agreed upon: all that was gotten in the interim was on the Catholics behalf. The Command of the Army being given to Marquis Spinola, together with the charge of Camp-Master-Generall of the Army, he carried it home into the Enemy's Country, having first taken the Pass upon the Rhei●e, together with two Forts, the one on the one side, the other on the other side thereof, he took Oldensell, Linghen, and Groll in Friesland, and made the passage upon the Rhine the better, by the recovery of Reinburg: passing suddenly from thence to the relief of Groll which was besieged by Prince Maurice, he won it, as it may be said, a second time, and more gloriously then at first, causing Maurice shamefully to retreat, and before his retreat to refuse the battle which he offered him. Spinola had proposed unto himself things far beyond this: he hoped to have entered farther into the Enemy's Country, and passing over rivers to make himself Master of Utricht; a City of great consequence, and there to plant the War in the very Gates of Holland, and in the bowels of the Enemy; but the natural strength of their situations, a new mutiny which happened in the Army, and an infinite number of other difficulties hindered him from making further advancements, and at last instructed him better how weighty a business it was to go about to quell the Rebellion of Flanders by force, wherhfore 'twas better to think how the differences might be agreed by Peace. The Enemies were already grown to bold, as they had many years before carried the War by Sea (where they were strongest) home even to the very doors of the Spaniards. They had infested the coasts of Spain, and had wrought themselves by sundry navigations into the East Indies, and were plotting to do the like in the West Indieses: so as the damage which the Crown of Spain received in the former, was so great, and what they had reason to apprehended in the other of so great consideration, as they did necessarily require some remedy, which was, that by compounding the affairs of Flanders; the affairs of the Indieses might likewise be compounded: Peace was therefore again endeavoured, but proved at first but in vain; and at last after a very long Treaty, and wherein mighty difficulties were met withal, a Truce of twelve years was concluded between them. The Enemies would never given way to any commencement of the business, which was at first had by a suspension of Arms, neither would they confirm the conclusion of the Truce which ensued, till it were declared in the very first place, An. 1607. that the suspension was at first had, and the Truce at last concluded with them, as with people of free Provinces, to the which neither the King of Spain, nor yet the Archdukes had any pretence at all: and this was the first Article of the Agreement: the chiefest of the others were, That during the Truce all manner of hostility should cease on each side: That this mean while, each of the Parties should peacefully enjoy what they did at the present possess: An. 1609. That in this interim no new Fortifications should be made by either side: That Commerce might be free throughout the whole Country as it was before the War: That it might be free to Traffic every where, save that out of Europe the Inhabitants of the United Provinces were not to negotiate in Country's belonging to the Crown of Spain. By which words, without nominating the Indieses, 'twas pretended that their People should be excluded from those parts of the Indieses which were subject to the King of Spain. These were the most essential Articles; to boot with many others concerning matters of Justice, and the restitution of Goods. Thus was the Truce concluded, and thus was the War of Flanders which could not be wholly extinguished, hushed for a while. A War so long and full of so many and so famous accidents, as thereby, beyond all others of our times, the memory of our age will be ennobled to Posterity; and it may be truly said, that Flanders in this present age hath been as a Military Scene in Europe, which for forty years together, till the conclusion of the Truce, hath exposed to the Theatre of the Universe all the Novelties, and most memorable spectacles which were ever seen in any preceding War, or shall ever be seen in any that shall ensue. THE RELATION OF THE UNITED PROVINCES OF FLANDERS. Made by Cardinal BENTIVOGLIO. BOOK III CHAP. I Discourse upon the Person of Count Maurice. NOw to return to where I left of, in the beginning of the last Book; Count Maurice of Nassaw, governs the Forces of the United Provinces by Sea and Land; and having had the Command thereof with so much reputation in the time of War, he exerciseth the same authority now in the time of Truce; and doubtlessly he deserves the Fame which he hath won of being one of the greatest Commanders of this our present age. He is Master of the Military profession, not lesle by Art, then by experience: he is especially well versed in the Mathematics, which he hath particularly studied, and keeps always some one with him who is very skilful in this Science. He is chief esteemed in two parts of the Militia; in training of men, and in Fortification: in all his Sieges his Fortifications have commonly proved impregnable: and to him is chief attributed the Introducing of those in our times which are used without the Trenches, whereby places are now a days much longer defended then they were in former times: As for Training, he is likewise very good thereat, and hath always kept that Art in practice: yea now that there is no War, he often makes all the neighbouring Garrisons be drawn forth together before the Hague, and he himself forms them into several bodies, to exercise the Soldiers; and hath caused the same exercise to be used once every week in all the Garrisons of the United Provinces. What Count Maurice his undertake have been may be gathered by the short narration which hath been made. In some, to say the truth, it hath been wished that he had been more forward and willing to fight; and their number is not few, who more freely have given him the name of irresolute, and fearful: they have said that it was merely inevitable necessity which made him join battle with the Archduke at Newport; that not to hazard himself in a fight, he did not relieve Reinburg, as he easily might have done, when Marquis Spinola besieged it; and that his fear was apparent when he ●ose from before Groll, shunning to encounter the same Spinola, whose Forces were far inferior to his. 'Tis certain, that Henry the fourth, King of France, who was always a severe censuror of the Military actions of Flanders, spoke not much honourably of Count Maurice, for not having relieved Reinburg, and for rising from before Groll, and he would often say, that the said Count was not to be called a great Soldier because he used to fight only among dikes and rivers, not ever endeavouring an Encounter in open field: but men do so differ in their judgements, as some blame those actions which others accounted praiseworthy; and there is nothing more usual then to hear the greatest Commanders termed fearful, instead of being esteemed wary: remiss instead of, circumspect; and but bad mean soldiers, instead of skilful in matters of War; consideration aught also to be had, who makes the War, where it is made, and who maintains it; according to which considerations it must be confessed, that no man could have been found out fit then Count Maurice for the affairs of the United Provinces, more corresponding with the condition of their people and Countries. By his so cautious Governing their War so long, and by his making so good use of their banks, rivers, and other advantages of nature, he hath withstood the Torrents of so many Nations, who have fall'n down into Flanders to fight in the behalf of the Crown of Spain; he hath consumed the inexhaustible gold of their Indieses; he hath made use of the so many mutinies among the Spaniards; and by his safe and circumspect waging of War, he hath at last procured a Truce to the United Provinces, which hath turned to their great advantage and establishment. But say he had showed himself more ready to have fall'n upon more hazardous and generous resolutions; it was not in his power to do so. He had always in his Army with him some Deputies who represented the Union of the Provinces; which Union having always held as one of the most important maxims of Government, to make use of well digested and wary Counsels, the said Deputies upon all occasions, left more Authority in Count Maurice to execute, then to resolve upon their undertake; and out of this reason he hath chief justified himself, when by any of his Military Actions he hath incurred the spoken of imputation. But on the other side it cannot be denied that together with his own valour, Count Maurice had great good fortune, in his gaining so great a reputation in War, he governed an Army which was well paid, and well provided of all things; always befriended by rivers and banks; and he never had any mutiny in his Army, nor any of those competitions or brawls betwixt Nation and Nation, which so often happened in the Catholic Camp; and especially between the Spaniards and Italians, to the great prejudice of their undertake: so as among other advantages he hath always had the Reins of Discipline free in his hands, without which an Army is nothing else then a wood of weapons full of all disorder. To what hath been touched concerning Count Maurice his backwardness, it may be added that his slowness and remissness in actions of these present times may appear to be the greater, by how much the like of Marquis Spinola have been the more quick and resolute: and truly to weigh well the proceed of the one and the other of them in Military affairs, you would say that Maurice had been one of Fabius his Scholars, and Spinola one of Caesar's. The one having almost ever shunned, and the other ever sought after fight; the one showing himself to be a delayer, not only by nature, but by choosing his advantage; and the other wholly intent through courage and forwardness, to make the events on his side advantageous. CHAP. II Diverse other particulars concerning Count Maurice his Person are touched upon. PRince Maurice his reputation is very great (as hath been said) in the United Provinces; yet without all doubt 'twas greater during the time of War, then it is now that weapons are laid down; he used all the means he might at first to hinder always of coming to an accommodation, and afterwards that no resolution might be taken of Peace, or Truce: but he could never keep the Treaty of, nor hinder that either by the one or the other way weapons might be laid aside. By the present Government, the other chief Heads for the managing of Civil affairs took Authority upon them; and having since kept it, and still the more established it, since the Truce, the Authority of Arms hath been weakened and lessened through idleness: the chiefest and most esteemed of these at the present is john Barnevelt, Advocate of Holland, and the usual Deputy of the same Province in the Council of the States General of the whole Union; Barnevelt was he who assisted chief in the negotiation of Truce; and by him Count Maurice was then counterpoised, as he still is; his experience being great in Public Affairs, and the practice and Authority which he hath particularly got in that Government very great. Count Maurice, to boot with his superintendency of Arms, is also the chief Head in the Civil Government of the United Provinces: being the Governor of four Provinces, as hath been said; and Count William the Governor of Friesland and Groninghen, as also Ernestus Governor of Ghelderland, having dependency on him, as General of the Armies. Count William, Count Ernestus, Count Henry, and Count john, all of them of the house of Nassaw, are now in the service of the United Provinces: The first two are Cousens, the third brother, and the last also kinsman to Count Maurice: Count William hath always held the principal place in the Army next to Count Maurice; a Gentleman of great experience and valour, and hath supplied the place of Lieutenant General of the Army. Count Ernestus is Campmaster. General, and is esteemed likewise a man of great Valour, and capable if occasion should require, of Governing the whole Army. Count Henry is Maurice his brother by the Father's side; he is General of the Horse; and though he be but a young man of 26 years of age, he hath given Good trial of himself in all occasions of War which have been presented. Count john is a bore Captain of Horse, Count Maurice is the head of all those of Nassaw; neither can it be said how great the respect is which they bear, and reverence which they use unto him; All of them receive great pay from the United Provinces. Count Maurice in respect of so many Offices, may be thought to receive about two hundred thousand florins yearly, which comes to twenty thousand pound sterling; wherein is to be comprehended 25000 florins, amounting to 2500 pound, which the Provinces since the Truce have given by way of remuneration to him and his heirs for ever. Count William receives four thousand pound sterling yearly, Count Er●estus three thousand; Count Henry as much; and Count john the ordinary pay of a Captain of Horse. Count Maurice resides for the most part in the Hague in Holland; and lives in the same Palace, wherein the Counsels of the States General of the United Provinces do meet: very great is the obsequy which the whole People show unto him: and for outward show, you would rather take him to be the Prince of those Provinces, then Head of their Military and Civil Government. He keeps great correspondency with the neighbouring Kings, and the Protestant Princes of Germany; and is greatly esteemed and honoured in all those parts; but even to the remotest parts of the Indieses, and into all those Southern and Eastern Countries is his fame carried, by the Navigation of the Hollanders and Zealanders, who have often shown his Picture, as victorious at Newport, magnifying at once the renown of their Commander, and the fame of their own Commonwealth. Count Maurice is very rich; he is said to have great store of money, and that he hath above a million of Gold in ready Cash; which is not much to be wondered at; he having always received very great pay from the United Provinces, and gotten notable emoluments, as well by means of so many places which he took during the War, as by the so much gain which the Hollanders and Zealanders have won by their Navigation at Sea: he hath shared deep in their acquisitions by Land as General of their Army, and of their get by Sea, as being their chief Admiral. He is Lord of Flushing and of Fervere in Zealand, and of Graves in Brabant, good and considerable Towns; and of other places of lesle importance: He is now about 45 years old; he hath no wife, nor seemed he yet to have ever any inclination to mary. His chief kindred are the Prince Elector Palatine in Germany, and the Duke of Bullion in France. The first is the son of a sister of his by the Father's side, and the othér husband to another sister of his by the Father's side also. It is doubted by many whither Count Maurice did ever aspire to make himself Prince of the United Provinces or not. On the one side, the love and reverence which the People bore to his Father; the occasion of a new and unstable Government; his so long command over their Armies, and that, with so great Authority, and his Props from without, have made it be often believed that he was not content to rest in his present limitated Fortune. On the other side, the United Provinces being so continually well satisfied with his Government; his way of demeaning himself, which was not after a popular fashion, as was his Fathers, but rather Stately and proud; and his endeavour rather to lay up, then to spend money, fearing that foreign Princes might peradventure not be well pleased that the United Provinces should return to be governed by one man only, are considerations which have made it be believed that he had no mind to provoke Fortune, nor to approach neare those precipices which usually border upon so immoderate desires. Perhaps he with more secret wisdom, did expect those conjunctures of time, which either did not afterwards ensue, or are already past. The United Provinces do every day better the grounds of their Government, and love Liberty too well; which after so long agitation, and so many Tempests, is at last brought home into their havens: Peace now rules; all noise of War is at an end; and the Authority of other Chiefteyns will every day grow greater, upon whom the chief administration of public Affairs is to depend, and it may be believed that they will never see the Authority of any one man grow too high. CHAP. III What the greatest enmities of the United Provinces be. BY what hath been said it may easily be comprehended what the greatest Friendships be, and what the greatest enmities of the United Provinces with foreign Princes; but I will treat more particularly hereof as in its proper place. Their Enmity will certainly be always greatest with the Pope, and the King of Spain, both which they have so highly offended: their double rebellion did at first arise against these two Princes, and hath indammaged them the most; by depriving the Catholic Church of its ancient Patrimony of so many of the Faithful; and the King of Spain of those Dominions which do belong by so just a Title to the House of Austria. Therefore they will always by all possible means that they can, endeavour to beaten down the Catholic Religion both within, and without their Territories: To the which though they be much moved by the mere licensciousness of Heresy, yet will the consideration of the so much more appugning the King of Spain's cause, incite them the more thereunto. At the beginning of the Rebellion they embraced Heresy, to alienate their people the more from the Spaniards, and that they might the better form a Government, which even in the point of Religion might be directly opposite to that of the Crown of Spain; so as they will seek to establish their present Form by Heresy; and by this tye, to fasten better the foreign Intelligence which they hold with all the Enemies to the Catholic Church, to boot with the means they use to those Princes which oppose the Spanish Power and do endeavour to acounterpoise thereunto. 'Tis seen how many and how perverse their designs have been to introduce their Sect in other parts; they have sailed even to the Indieses, and by their Traffic have infected those parts with their Heresy; and at home Calvinism doth chief rule among them, which is the worst of all Sects, and that which above all others makes subjects revolt against their Princes: yet divers other sects are tolerated among them, and also many Catholics, particularly in Holland; but the Catholics are wholly deba●'d the exercise of their Religion; and are likewise much oppressed in other things; not so much for being Catholics, as for being accounted either well disposed, or at lest not so ill affected towards the Spaniards, as the Heretics among them are. 'Tis apparent then that the United Provinces have been moved in a great part to wage and maintain War against the Catholic Church, that they might maintain it likewise more effectually by their Forces against the Crown of Spain. And for what remains, 'tis not to be doubted, but that by all the most pernicious ways of State that may be, they will endeavour all the prejudice they can to that Crown. Their talent is alike evil against the Archduke Albertus and his wife the Infanta Donna Isabel, who are now Princes of the Lowcountreys; for they never made any difference between the Interest of the King of Spain, and that of the Archdukes, since they seen them come into Flanders with so little hope of issue. 'Tis no doubt that they will always show the like aversion to the other Princes in Germany which are of the House of Austria; and that they will readily join upon all occasions with the rivals, or enemies of that House; as is seen in the fresh occasion of the Archduke Leopolds entrance into juliers; which place they had the boldness to sit down before, despising all Imperial Majesty, and all the Emperor's Authority. They have no occasion of friendship or disfriendship with the King of Polonia; unless it be their dislike of that King's greatness and felicity, who is so zealous for the Catholic Faith, and so desirous to propagate it: they therefore together with the King of England have aided Duke Charles in Swethland against him; and certainly are not well pleased with those his progresses which he hath made, and daily increases in Muscovia: yet the opportunity of the Port of Dantsick, frequented by the ships of Holland and Zealand, may in some sort make the United Provinces desirous of his friendship. CHAP. IV. Of the friendship which the United Provinces hold; and first of that with the Crown of France. THe greatest friendships which the United Provinces have had, and do still hold, is with France and England: they have had their chief prop and maintenance from these two Kingdoms. The Duke of Allanscon entered, as hath been said, more then once into Flanders with whole Armies; and 'twas always thought that under colour of his youthful spirit, blamed in appearance by the Kings his Brothers, Charles the ninth, and Henry the third of France, he carried on in common (though secretly) both his and their ends: which were that by his means the States of Flanders might be severed from the Crown of Spain. Those designs in the behalf of France being at the same time as it were vanished, and conceived, and that Kingdom being involved in so many & so long civil discords, the rebellion was for many years chief maintained by forces from England: and the Queen making use to her advantage, of the evils as well of her confederates the Dutch, as of those of the Spaniards her enemies; she sent the Earl of Leicester at that time into Holland with an entire Army, and demanded Flushing, and the Ramakins in Holland, and the Brill in Zealand, which are the chief Maretine keys of both those Provinces, to be assigned over to her as cautionary Towns, and to be garisoned by the English. Great were the aids which King Henry the fourth of France did continually afford to the United Provinces, when he had once compounded and quieted the affairs of his own Kingdom; and since the Queen of England's death, his Authority and belief among them did so increase, as being chief persuaded and almost constrained thereunto by his endeavours, they first were induced to treat, and then to conclude the Truce with the Spaniards. In this last peace of friendship of the King of France, they seen notwithstanding that many designs lay hid, which caused great suspicions in them. 'Twas said that the King of France began after the example of the King of England to make it be understood, that he would likewise have some Towns delivered up into his hands, in change for those moneys and aids which he furnished them withal for the maintenance of their War; whereupon those Provinces grew into such jealousy, as it was held for certain that this was one of the chiefest reasons which induced them to think of agreement: yet the King held always the same authority and confidence with them as before; till the last commotions of France falling out, after the Prince of Condes flight, and the King preparing to take the field with a powerful Army, the United Provinces began to have new apprehensions of his ways. The King had Written into Holland to the Dowager Princess of Orange whose husband was slain, that upon the occasion of his Armies approach in those parts, he would come privately to the Hague, where he would be her household Guest. At this news, though sent but by the way of Jest, the United Provinces grew very apprehensive. They feared that if the King should come, he in so happy a conjuncture, would practise some design of his own which might tend to their prejudice; and especially that he should endeavour to be chosen their Protector: A Title which might seem to taste of favour, but when narrowlier looked into, full of suspicion; so great Princes seldom using to take upon them such protections, unless it be to given Laws to those that they protect; and how could they have withstood the desires of so great a Prince in their own homes, and with so great Forces it in their Country, and upon their Frontiers? by reason of their being freed from these suspicions. it may be thought that the United Provinces were lesle sorry for his death, which in other respects proved a very grievous loss to them. They do now notwithstanding receive the same signs of friendship from the Queen Regent, which they did from the King her husband: and 'tis to be believed that for the time to come, good correspondency will always be had between the Crown of France, and the United Provinces. The French, because the severing of the United Provinces from the King of Spain, makes so much for them; and the other that by the favour of France they may keep themselves still the better from the Spanish Empire: yet would not the French that the united Provinces should arrive at such a greatness of power as they aspire unto; for so the whole Low Countries might turn into one Heretical Commonwealth, as they lately were under one only Catholic Prince: Their power would then doubtlessly be not lesle dreadful by land, then it is now by sea. But of all other their neighbours the French aught chief to apprehended this, by the boldness which would grow in their Hugonots in France by the increase of these Heretic Forces in Flanders. Whereupon 'tis thought, that the King of France was in this respect chief induced to be so servant in endeavouring the Truce; that he might leave the Spanish Forces, and the Forces of the united Provinces so equally counterpoised in Flanders, as that France might receive no prejudice from either side: And 'tis not unknown what troubles have often befallen that Kingdom from thence. First when the Princes of the House of Burgony governed Flanders; and since, after that those Provinces, with so many other Kingdoms and Dominions come under the House of Austria. The late King of France maintained at his own cost two Brigades of Foot and 200 Horse, as hath been said: and still permitted his Subjects to fight in their service, and did moreover in time of War, yearly assist them with large sums of money. The same people keep now in their Service, and are maintained as at first at the charge of that Crown. There are many other French likewise under their pay: and for all things else the same confederacy is kept on both parts, as was in the time of the late King. CHAP. V Of the friendship which the United Provinces hold with the King of England. GReat Friendship and Intelligence was held between the Queen of England and the United Provinces, as hath been said, after the death of the Duke of Allanscon, and that the civil wars fell out in France, the Queen of England may be said to have been their only supporter. And though the jealousies were great which the United Provinces had of that Queen in the Earl of Lesters time, yet when they were freed of that Earls Government, their suspicions began to grow lesle. And the same correspondency was held on both sides as was before. The Queen furnished them with their best foot, the English having always been the best foot Soldiers of their Army: They contracted almost all the debts which they own the Crown of England in the Queen's time; then when being reduced to so great a want of Forces, she sent them over not only men, but moneys to pay them. The Queen's ends in fomenting the rebels of Flanders were chief two. The one, her own particular, which was, to increase the Heresy among her neighbours, the more to secure her own falling of from the Church of Rome. In the other she shared with the French, which was to sever the States of Flanders from the Crown of Spain, and more particularly the Maretine Provinces, as it fell out afterwards. And doubtlessly if the Spaniards had peacefully inloyed the Low Countries, both England and Ireland would have had reason to be afraid of them; lying in the midst between the Maretine Forces of Spain on the one side, and the so great and many Forces of Flanders on the other side. The United Provinces had likewise two ends in their friendship with England; the one to be assisted in their revolt from the Crown of Spain, and the other to make use of the neare neighbouring Heresy of England, the better to strengthen their new Sects, and by that means to resist the Spaniards the more easily: the respect of Traffic hath also made this friendship be much desired by both sides: the Commerce is very great which the City of London holds with Amsterdam, Midleburg, and with all the other Towns of Holland and Zealand: and the Hollanders likewise reap great advantage by their fishing in the English Seas. The Authority and Intelligence which the Queen held with the United Provinces, was then as we have seen, very great: who was by them esteemed a Lady of a very high spirit, and of a masculine and warlike Government. After the Queen's death, the late King of France his Authority increased so much among them, as the King of England was, and is yet but little esteemed of by them; yet he even after peace made with the King of Spain, hath granted such men to the United Provinces as they stand in need of, as the Queen formerly did, with change only of some outward appearances for the better satisfaction of the Spaniards. The Governors of the United Provinces speak of this King in terms of small respect; and seeing him so addicted to hunting, and to his book, especially to such as treat of controversy; they say a private condition would better become him then that of a Prince, and that he is fit to be a Preacher then a King. But though they speak but meanly of his person, yet they much prise the neighbourhood and opportunity of his Kingdoms, and have still continued the same prerogative to the Ambassador of England, which was granted in the Earl of Lesters time, which is, that he is to have a place and Vote in their Council of State. They keep the same confederacy with the King of England as they did with the late Queen, and the same is renewed by the King with them. CHAP. VI Of the Friendship which the United Provinces have with other Princes. THe King of Denmark and the united Provinces are good friends, which they are reciprocally invited to by the neighbourhood of their Country. This Vicinity is very commodious for the Hollanders in respect of their fishing, and building of ships, which are made out of the woods wherewith Norway may be said to be covered: for what remains, the united Provinces have received but little good in their occasions from Denmark, either in money or men. This King is Master of very large Territories, but so buried in winter and ice, as his forces are but small though his circuit be so large. They maintain good correspondency with the Heretic Princes of Germany, especially with the Calvinists: of which the chiefest are the Prince Elector Palatine of Rhine, and the Elector of Brandenburg; as for the Service of Brandenburg, 'tis seen in the difference of the States of Cleves and Guliers. And the last Palatine when he died, in token of his confidence, left his sons to their Government and protection: their conformity in Sect, and more particularly in their aversion to the house of Austria, together with the nearness of their Countries, hath easily wrought, and will as easily preserve friendship between them: the Germane Princes are notwithstanding for the most part not over abounding in moneys, so as the help which the United Provinces received from thence, in their late War did presently vanish. Now that they are grown so strong, they may rather assist their friends on that side, then look for any relief from them, unless it be for the raising of some men if they shall have occasion for them; as hath been seen in the behalf of Brandenburg at the Siege of Guliers; which was chief begun and ended by their Forces. In Italy, the United Provinces have begun some Intelligence with the State of Venice; when the Truce was concluded they sent an extraordinary Ambassador to Venice; and received another the like from the Republic. And affairs stand yet thus between them; but 'tis to be believed, that through Traffic, and worldly interest, this correspondency will grow greater. The United Provinces have likewise now begun to introduce Traffic and friendship in the Turks Dominions, the Hollanders after the Truce, began to Traffic in Syria: and have since been drawn on by the good entertainment they found among the Turks, and by their own gain, to continued Commerce in those parts: and that they may establish it the better for the good of their whole Countries, the United Provinces have now resolved to sand over one that shall be Resident at Constantinople. CHAP. VII. Whither this new Commonwealth of the United Provinces be like to last or no. NOthing is more fallacious, then to judge of Futurety: It may not notwithstanding peradventure be displeasing to him who shall read this my Relation, if I argue here at last with as much brevity as so dubious a business may permit, whither this new Commonwealth of the United Provinces be likely to last or not. There are many considerations which make for the duration thereof. And first, what is more natural to mankind, or of more power with them then the love of Liberty? Of all Nations of the world, the Northern people of Europe have always seemed most desirous thereof; and chief those of Flanders. In the time of the Emperor Vespasian, how famous was the ancient Insurrection of the Batavians, which is so nobly described by Tacitus. There was no talk of bereaving them of that Liberty which they enjoyed: notwithstanding, thinking that they lived in slavery whilst they tolerated the pride and violence which the Roman State ministers did in various manner use in those parts, they grew to disdain, and from disdain to rebel, and from rebellion to down right war: They wanted not in those days a Claudius Civilis, who played the Prince of Orange his part in those troubles. By him, first his Battavians, and afterwards divers neighbouring Countries were incited to take up Arms, till such time as all arms and contumacy being laid aside, those people remained in their ancient dependency and friendship with the Romans; and the Romans on their side withheld from all rigour and violence which might provoke them again to revolt. The Hollanders that now are, (who were those ancient Batavians) and the other United Provinces, boast that their ancient Liberty and practised Form of Government, descends from these. They confess that they have always had one eminent Chiefteyn, Head, or Governor, but such a one as hath been always subject to the Laws, and Sovereign Empire of the Commonwealth, which were from time to time exercised with very little difference by the Provincial Orders. That the title of these heads were afterwards more modernly changed, but that the degree of the Commonwealth was not diminished with this alteration of Titles, but kept still its supreme Authority, whilst Holland, Zeala●d, and the rest of the Provinces of the Low Countries remained severed under their own peculiar Earls and Lords: That when the House of the Princes of Burgony come afterwards to Govern those Countries, their Government was much altered in many things, the high-born blood and Kingly haughtiness of that House, not enduring to depend upon the Laws and Commonwealth: That the Princes of the House of Austria did much lesle accommodate themselves to this moderation. That the Emperor, Charles the fifth, after having gotten new worlds under this Empire, and King Philip his son after having inherited them with the rest of so great a Monarchy, they disdained to be limited in their Commands over their Subjects: whereupon they did not only not given way that the Low Countries should continued in their former Government, but by force, and violence altered their Laws, took from them their Immunities, made them so many Colonies to the Spaniard, and laid heavy yokes of Tribute, and Citadels upon them. That from hence the ancient Battavians are risen up again, and have taken up Arms against the Monarchy of Spain, as their forefathers did against the Roman Empire. That these have been not lesle fortunate then those others; since now they preserve the Liberty which they did enjoy, and have now recovered that which they had almost lost. Holland is full of the Story of these successes, as also all the other United Provinces. The desire of Liberty being then so natural to all people, and chief to the people of Flanders, 'tis easily to be believed that the United Provinces will use all the means they can, to preserve themselves in their present Form of Government, and still establish this their new form of a Free Commonwealth. To boot with the love of Liberty, the Government of the United Provinces is now so well and firmly grounded, as their Commonwealth is likely thereby to subsist along time; far distant and forced changes which are made from one Form of Government to another clean contrary, are usually dangerous: But the passage which the United Provinces have made from the Government which they used before the War, to that which they now enjoy after the Truce, it cannot be said that they have altered their past form, into another clean contrary, but that they have only altered it in part: their ancient Laws are kept alive, and every Province and City is Governed almost as they were formerly; only the Prince his Sovereignty rests now in the Orders of every Province, and the Eminency of the Head, remains with the Governor of the same Province. How great then is the concord which ties and binds the United Provinces together? How great are their own Forces, and the Friendship which they hold with Foreign Princes? Concord will keep their minds well disposed, and keep of all occasions of Domestic Tumults. Their own Forces are such as may be thought sufficient to withstand such danger as may befall them from abroad; and say they were not of themselves able to do it, it may be believed that they would be supplied by those very Foreign aids which have joined with them in the whole course of the last War. By these reasons which have been alleged, it may then be conjectured, that this new Commonwealth is likely every day to grow more solid, and better established, to be of long subsistence, yea that with time it continually grow the greater and more powerful, like that of the Swissers: and how great is the conformity between these? The Swissers revolted at first with very small Forces: They were inflamed with the love of Liberty; the mountainous situations fought for them till such time as the other more potent Cantons, joined with the former which were weaker: and at last their Commonwealth come to be so established, as it is not only become durable, but even formidable upon many occasions to divers Princes. Just so the Insurrection of the United Provinces had its rise from the two Provinces of Holland and of Zealand only; the people were thereunto provoked by the love of Liberty, by the advantage of the sea, rivers, and other weapons of nature, they made their chiefest resistance at first: afterwards their affairs went on more prosperously by the joining of other Provinces, and the assistance of neighbouring Princes: till at last this their new power is come to that pass, as that they may be said to given the Law to others at sea, and not to be likely to receive it from others by land: there Government is also like that of the Swissers. Though this be rather better then the other by being more uniform, and by the easier joining of the particular Members of every Province, with the whole body of the General Union. But on the other side, many reasons may be alleged why this new Commonwealth should not be durable. First, for what concerns the love of Liberty; in lieu thereof we see that the benefit which people receive by obedience, is succeeded; who from time to time have submitted themselves almost every where to the Empire of some one. 'Tis true, at first all Kings were Heads of the people, and not Kings; of Commonwealths and not of Kingdoms. But afterwards Custom hath so prevailed, as people have been disposed and accustomed to the habit of entire obedience: just as a plant, or human body we see are accustomed to live in other earth, and under other Climates, which differ from their own natural ones. Who would now persuade themselves, that the leaning toward Liberty could be of force enough to move a desire in the people of Spain, France, and other parts, of returning to their ancient Forms of their former more free Governments, whereof they have not only lost the desire, but even the memory. It cannot be denied notwithstanding, but that in the more Northern parts of Europe, there are yet freer Forms of Government. The King of England cannot do many things without his Parliament; nor the Princes of the Low Countries, without the consent of the Provinces which are under them. The King of Denmark's power is yet more limited; so is the King of Poland's; and the Princes of Germany's Authority is much restrained: But it must be granted that the Authority of the Supreme Head in all these Governments hath ever been, and still is very great: Wherein the people's obedience to their Prince is so ancient, as they can endure no other Government then that of one alone. It may then also be imagined, that the United Provinces must necessarily incline, out of their habit of ancient obedience, to suffer themselves to be Governed by some one only man; but in that Form of Government notwithstanding which they were want formerly to enjoy, and which may correspond with their ancient institions and Customs. To which Form when those Provinces shall see themselves invited by any oportune conjuncture, it may be thought that they might easily return to their ancient obsequy and obedience to that Prince, which time and occasion shall council them to receive. In answer to that the present Government differs not much from what it formerly was, it may be said, that the alteration is such, as from it many others of greater importance may be expected. The Government is too much altered in the so great Authority which Count Maurice holds in them: too much in the Burden of so many Grievances and Garrisons; and lastly too much in the power of some of the Provinces which do almost Lord it over the rest. And hence it is that the Concord between the United Provinces, is not effectually such as it appears outwardly to be. Some of them are not well pleased with the so great Eminency which Count Maurice possesseth among some others of them. Holland is envied by them all, by reason of its great opulency. In particular, there are almost continual Jars between Holland and Zealand: Some of them complain very much that they are oppressed with the same Grievances and Garrisons since the Truce, as they were in the time of War: and Holland by its not complaining thereof, makes the rest quarrel the more with it, and with those that Govern there, who seem chief to sustain themselves, by the reputation and support of the Holland Forces: To boot with these diversities of Interest, how much doth the difference of so many and so various sects withstand the Union of their minds: many, and in many things disagreeing, are the Sects into which the People of the United Provinces are divided; besides the very many Catholics which are there; and how can their own Forces be sufficient for their defence, when they draw not together? since it may so fall out, that such Foreign Princes as now side with them, growing hereafter to better Intelligence with the Crown of Spain, perhaps will not, or hindered by their own necessities, cannot hereafter assist the United Provinces. Out of all these disquisitions it may then be gathered, that this new Commonwealth is not likely to continued in its present condition, but that it will rather fail therein shortly, and be again reduced at last to the Government of one only. CHAP. VIII. The end of the preceding Discourse, and of the Relation. SUppose now that the United Provinces were inclined to submit themselves again to the Government of one alone; let us see who this Prince may likeliest be, and by what means it may be hoped that they may be brought to submit themselves to him: In the past troubles of Flanders, the Rebels necessitated thereunto, fled for protection first to the French, and then to the English; but the new Principality of Alanzon vanished almost assoon as it had any being; and the Queen of England laying aside her hopes of Domination, was afterwards content with the Power of advising. Orange his hopes and cus'nages were cut short by death; and Count Maurice wants either courage or opportunity to advance his Fortune. So as it is not to be believed that the United Provinces will ever subject themselves either to the French or English, or to Count Maurice: then next to the House of Burgony, the Low Countries with justest Title will fall into the hands of the House of Austria. It is thought by the gravest personages, and the best experienced in the Affairs of Flanders, that the United Provinces may return to be under the House of Austria by two several ways. The one, by appointing out unto them once again a Prince of that blood, who may succeed the Archdukes instead of Issue. The other, by endeavouring to induce the said Provinces by such means as shall be thought best fitting, to return under the obedience of the Crown of Spain, in case the King after the death of the Archdukes, shall not incline to cut the United Provinces of again from the Crown of Spain. The first of these two ways is thought the likeliest to succeed; and 'tis seen that necessity did at last teach Philip the second, when all other remedies proving desperate, he was brought to make use of this, though he could not prevail in so doing by reason of the Archduke's sterility: This remedy will then consist in the King of Spain's resolving to Institute one of his own sons for heir to the Archdukes, which son by some fitting marriage may establish perpetual succession of Princes of that Country in Flanders! Thus it might be hoped that the people of the United Provinces might be incited to love this mentioned Issue, as those from whom Dutch Successors might hereafter proceed, and that from this love, an inclination to obedience might ensue, and finally Intigrall obedience. 'Tis likely that the French would assist herein, to the end that they might be for ever rid of the neighbourhood and hazard of the Spanish Forces on that side of their Kingdom which lies open towards Flanders, and the better to ●eucure their Country from the vicinity and danger of the Heretics in the Low Countries: Since by the reuniting of those Countries under a Catholic Prince, they might have reason to hope that the Catholic Religion would be raised up again in those parts where it is now under hatches, and cousequently the Intelligence which the Heretics of the United Provinces, with those of the Kingdom of France would be at an end. Among the English these respects would be more counterpoised: on the one side they would willingly see the Low Countries wholly alienated from the Crown of Spain; for those reasons as have been said before; but on the other side they would not be pleased to see this so potent and neare neighbourhood of Heresy fail. The second way, which would consist in using such means as were most conducible to make the United Provinces submit themselves again to the Crown of Spain, is generally judged to be harder to effect then the former, and may briefly be reduced to two heads, either of working upon the inclination of the said Provinces, or of endeavouring to subjugate them again by Force. It hath already been seen how much Philip the second laboured both these ways, and yet got no good thereby. As among the Elements some agreed, and some are of a contrary nature, so among those people in Europe which are under the Monarchy of Spain, some are of a temper conformable to the Spanish Nation, and some of a clean repugnant habit. Their Government is easilyer received, and their Customs embraced in Italy; whereas in Flanders the repugnancy almost in all things between the Inhabitants there and the Spaniards, was a chief cause of the first Insurrection, and then of the War, and hath at last occasioned the falling of of many of the Provinces: so as to say truth, there is small hopes that the United Provinces will ever submit themselves to the obedience of the Crown of Spain, out of their own inclination: In case then that success be to be despaired of by this way, it will remain that all hopes are to be placed in bringing them to their former obedience by force of arms. Doubtlessly a dangerous and difficult way; as forty years' experience hath shown: if the war be to commence again when the Truce shall end, will the Spaniards have better soldiers, or better Commanders? Will their Princes prove better? or will they meet with more favourable conjuncture of times then formerly? Spain will never have better Commanders, nor more flourishing Armies then they have had till now in Flanders. 'Twill never have a wiser Prince then Philip the second; nor will it ever meet with times more oportune, then those were when its Enemies in Flanders were brought so low, and when at the same time they were so little fomented by Foreign Forces: It is rather to be feared that in such a case the Enemy might get advantage, being grown proud, by their so great past prosperity; and made secure that for the time to come the wont strength of their Country will never fail them, nor their people's first obstinacy, nor the already experienced forwardness of their confederate Princes, in assisting them upon all occa●ions against the Crown of Spain: so as it may be greatly doubted, that if they should fall to War again, things would go worse with the Spaniard, and that instead of getting, they would receive new losses. And unless it were for this doubt, why was the Truce so much desired by the Spaniards? But the mean while the Truce will afford Spain time maturely to weigh what will be most advantageous for that Crown, as well touching the King's appointment of a son of his to succeed as heir to the Archduke's, in manner as hath been said; as concerning what resolution is to be taken, either of prolonging the Truce, or making a firm peace, or of laying aside all further thought of agreement, and breaking out into war again; they are all of them businesses of such importance and weight, as will very well require long and mature consultation; but above all, that our chief consultations be had with God, who gives and takes away Kingdoms; changeth and altereth them as he pleases, and makes human wisdom often times prove most blind, when it appears to be quickest ●ighted. THE RELATION OF FLANDERS. (To wit) Of those Two Provinces which remain still under the Obedience of the Archduke's, ALBERTUS and his wife ISABELLA, Infanta of SPAIN. Wherein also Relation is made of the Religion professed in the United Provinces. Of the State of Religion in ENGLAND, SCOTLAND, and IRELAND. Written by the Cardinal Bentivoglio in his time of being Nuntio at the same Archduke's Court; and sent to Rome to the Cardinal Burghese, Nephew to Pope ●aulus Quintus; Dated April 6. 1613. THe matters of Negotiation, which are treated by the Nuntios of the Apostolic sea, are either ecclesiastical or temporal: the first are proper for the Nuntio, as the chief person who represents the Apostolic Ministers; and the second appertains unto him also in respect of his common condition with the other Ambassadors of Secular Princes. That you may therefore have a full and perfect knowledge of the most Important affairs which fall under the particular cognizance of the Nuntio for Flanders: 'Twill be needful to reduce them to the two forementioned heads. Observing the same order; I will divide this present Relation into two parts: In the first I will treat of temporal Negotiations; in the other of such as are Ecclesiastical; and I will treat first of the first, that I may tender the knowledge of the other the more clear. In Temporalities I will keep myself to some distinct heads; in representing the nature of the Archduke and the Infanta his wife, the condition of their States; the form of their Court; what Officers they make use of; and what Intelligence they hold with neighbouring Princes; and at last I will say something concerning the Army which the King of Spain maintains in Flanders. In matters ecclesiastical I will observe the like Order; I will reduce them to some particular Heads; and when I shall have first related the present condition of Religion in those Provinces of Flanders as are Catholic, and continued under the obedience of the aforesaid Princes, I will pass to show the State thereof in Holland and the other Heretical United Provinces, which are now wholly divided from the former; for that the Churchmen which are in those parts are under the same Nuntioship: and I will conclude the Relation in setting down all that belongs to the same Head, in the Kingdoms of England, Scotland, and Ireland; since all Affairs of Religion which occur in those Kingdoms, fall likewise under the same Nuntiature. To begin the said order, I will first treat of the nature and custom of the Archduke's, by which Title (as it is commonly used in these Provinces) the husband and wife are equally understood; and then I will pass on to those other heads which are contained in the first part. CHAP. I Of the Natures and Customs of the Archdukes. THe Archduke Albertus is low of stature, his complexion partly San guine, partly Phlegmatic; as are generally almost all the Austrian Princes; his face white, his hair light coloured, and his lineaments very noble: he hath an Austrian mouth, and his complexion is rather tender then strong; he is troubled with the Gout; he had want to be but seldom troubled therewithal; but of late his Fits come oftener and are more painful: he is not subject to any other indisposition of health; nor can it be said how regular he is in his diet: at this present he is 54 years old: and thus much for the habit and temperature of his body. For what concerns his mind he is a Prince of singular virtue; and first it cannot be said how pious, and religious he is; nor how great the zeal and respect is which he shows outwardly towards Divine Worship, and sacred things: In all his Demeanours, you may read a rare integrity, and appearing bashfulness; wherein he may be an Example not only to all Princes, but even to every private man; he is a great lover of Justice, and keeps great moderation in all things; he is grave in his actions, and of so composed and equal temper in them all, as he is never seen to vary the lest title from himself: he speaks but little; according to the mode of the Austrian Princes; and slowly according to his natural Custom: He is Master of five Languages, his own mother tongue which is Dutch, Spanish, Latin, Italian, and French: he speaks and uses the three first, and understands the other two very well: he is knowing in divers sorts of Learning, which he got whilst he was Cardinal; and doth particularly study the Mathematics: In matters of business he is indefatigable, and his chiefest delight lies in business; giving audience seeeral hours every day, both morning and evening with incredible attention and goodness: he is wonderful secret, and makes as little discovery by his looks as by his words; you can never read any commotion of mind in her face, which is always equal and serene; he is of a constant nature, as he hath showed in his patient bearing with so many adversities as have befallen him in the late Wars: He suffers in the common opinion by being irresolute and slow; and certainly he is better for peace then war: which commonly requires Council and resolution at the same time; and cannot admit of so harmonious and equal order in actions, as the Archduke useth. This his so slow proceeding and with such gravity, ariseth partly from the natural temperature of his body, but much more from his having lived so long in Spain, where he form Customs to the Idea of those of King Philip the second, whom he set before him for his example in all things; nor was that so grave and well weighed manner of proceeding to be blamed in the King, as being according to the Government and nature of the Spaniard; nor had the King ever any occasion of altering that his usual way of living in time of peace with the different way of proceeding which is requisite in war; but Flanders requires a Prince more affable, and tractable, and the wars there more efficacious and more resolute actions, then are those of the Archduke. For what concerns the way of Government in Spain, he did very well to imitate King Philip, but for what concerns Flanders, and the managing of Arms, he might have done much better to have taken his Father, the Emperor Charles the fifth for his example; who knew very well how to temper his proceed, and accommodate them to the so many and differing natures of People whereof the body of his Empire did consist. The Dutch seem rather to reverence, then to love the Archduke; they reverence him for his so many virtues, but do not greatly love him, because he never was communicable with the People, as they desired he should be. This his so great Retiredness and Gravity, is accompanied with an high punctuality of Majestical state; which he will have kept up, and which to say truth, is not so generally approved of upon all occasions. But 'tis no wonder if among the Harmony of so many egregious parts there be some dissonance, or discords of human affections. For all things else, the Archduke is endued with excellent qualities, and deserves to be recorded to posterity for one of the greatest and most considerable Princes which our Age hath afforded. But the Infanta Donna Isabel, his wife, of whom I am now to speak, is no less worthy to be recorded to posterity. Her complexion, wherein blood and phlegm do likewise predominate, is very like her husbands. She is higher of stature then most women are, and in these her present years she still keeps that Majestical beauty in her eyes and countenance, which was thought in her youth to exceed all others. She is graceful in all her actions, and a certain benignity appears throughout all her behaviour, accompanied with Greatness, which violently draws unto her the love of all men; she is now about forty six years old; in perfect health; she is given to exercise, and is a great friend to Hunting, and field pastimes. Sometimes she herself on horseback will Hound her Hawk, and Govern the Chase. As for her gifts of mind, she is undoubtedly one of the gallantest and most signilized Princesses that ever lived, and represents unto the life in all Princely virtues, that famous Isabel, her Progenetrix, whose name she bears, and from whose blood she is descended. It is not to be expressed how gracious and affable she is; how liberal and magnanimous; how just; but chief how Pious and Religious. Her zeal unto the Church is very great; nor hath she any more servant desire then to see it flourish every where, especially in those Heretical Provinces of Flanders, where formerly the Piety of her Predecessors did shine not less, then in these others which do faithfully stand still for the Catholic Religion. Such is the modesty and retiredness of her Ladies, as you would say they lived in a Monastery, not a Court. And yet on the other side, you shall not see a Court fuller of Majesty, and more jolly then hers, in all occurrences which may arise, either in Turnements, Hunting, or other Recreations, which are used in Princes Courts. Her mind is truly Heroical, and above the reach of adverse fortune, as was particularly seen in the Archduke's ill luck at Newport. Upon which occasion it might often times be doubted, whither her constancy was greater when she first heard that the Battle was lost, or when she heard that the Archduke was taken, or at the third advertisement that he was at liberty, but sorely wounded. She hath left the Government of those States which were her Dowry, to the Archduke, being willing to dis-robe herself thereof to the end that business might be the speedilier dispatched by passing through the hands of only one; and that the greater her husband's authority was, the people might bear the greater respect unto him. But notwithstanding the Archduke doth not any thing which he doth not first fully communicate to her; but adviseth with her in all things, and receives great help from her sublime wit, which nature hath endued her withal, and from the singular experience which she got in so high and famous a School of Wisdom as was that of her glorious Father King philip. But the Archduke doth this likewise, as moved thereunto by the love which they mutually bear one to another, which doth equal, if not exceed all example of matrimonial affection. It appears almost incredible, that there can be such an uniformity of thoughts and will in two several persons; no discord being ever observed to be between them in any thing whatsoever, as if there were but one soul in both their bodies. In all these things the Infanta is in particular highly to be commended; who being Princess of these Countries, having in her a masculine spirit, yea, even a greater resolution then the Archduke; is notwithstanding pleased to submit herself so strictly to the Laws of Matrimony, as she is content with the very bore Title of a Wife. And doubtlessly she is generally much more beloved then her Husband, and is of far more amiable conditions; for she is exceeding affable in her conversation with all people, and hath extraordinary endowments of nature, which wins the very souls of all men. So as in the common opinion a better tempered Principality could not be desired, if the virtues of the Infanta and the Archduke being joined together, some particular defect wherein that Husband is wanting, might be supplied by some particular perfection wherein the Wife doth superabound. CHAP. II Of the condition of those States which the Archduke possesses. THE Archduke's States in the Low Countries which after the Truce keeps still in their obedience to them; as also in the Province of the Country of Burgony are in number ten. To with, the Dukedom of Brabant, Ghelders', Lucemburg, and Limburg; the Counties of Flanders, Hennault, Artois, and Namures; the Lordship of Malines; and the Marquisit of the holy Empire. But at this time the last is comprehended under Brabant; and Flanders is divided into three Provinces; into the Province of Flanders itself; into that of Torney, with the Territory of Terneses; and into the Province of the great Town of Silla, together with the two other Towns of Duay, and Orciers. To these Provinces is added the City of Cambrey, with the Territory of Cambresis on the side of France. The County of Burgony was afterwards given in portion by Philip the second King of Spain, to his daughter the Infanta, together with the Provinces of Flanders. All these Provinces are generally very fertile, & set wine aside (whereof howsoever Burg●●y produceth great store) they abound in all things necessary for human life. They abound most in Cattles and whitmeats. The Country is for the most part very pleasing, and the Fields are covered over almost all the whole year with gladsome Pasturage; and the Spring for many months together doth wantonnize it there; the Summer in Flanders, being but as the Spring in Italy; The cold there may rather be said to be long then sharp, which is easily mastered without their Stoves; the people for the most part are of a fair aspect, very white skinned, and of as candid a disposition. Their conversation is pleasant, they are greatly given to liberty, and stick close to their privileges, and ancient institutions. The Government of the aforesaid People and Provinces is of three sorts; Monarchical, Optimatical, and Popular. The Monarchical government consists in the persons of the Archduke's; that of the Optemati in the two Orders or States of the Churchmen and Nobility; and the Popular in the like of the Cities and Villages, (as they are here called) wherein for the most part noon but the common sort of People divided into their several occupations, do inhabit. The Monastical Abbots whereof the greatest part of Ecclesiastics in every Province, doth consist; inhabiting usually in their Monasteries, out of the Cities, and the Nobility in their Country habitations. The States of every Province consists of these three sorts of persons, over which the Prince keeps his particular Prerogatives. So as these three forenamed Orders cannot by their own proper authority call together the States of the Province; the doing whereof depends always on the Prince; who upon any occasion either of his own, or of the Province, calls them together, and propounds unto them the business; to which every Order gives their Answer; and without the consent of all the three Orders, the Prince cannot of himself determine any thing. In this point his will is bounded by the will of the people; who sometimes absolutely deny what he demands of them, and will maintain their ancient privileges of being entreated to what they given way unto, and will enjoy a subjection mixed with liberty. The States General of all the Provinces is form of the particular States of every Province; the particular States meet together every year once; in which meeting little or nothing is now adays handled, but the renewing of the consent of the three Orders for the continuation of the supply which every Province uses to contribute towards the Prince his maintenance. But the Convocation of the States General is very seldom had; this being a great Body to govern, and usual suspected by the authority and greatness of the Prince. Nor did they ever meet in all the time of the Archduke's, save at the very first, which was that they might confirm the resignation which King Philip the second made of those Provinces to his daughter the Infanta. For what concerns Justice; civil affairs come first to be handled by the Magistrates of Cities, when the people of the same City are concerned therein; and afterwards pass by way of Appeal to the Provincial Counsels, which are in every Province. But the causes of the Nobility and Titulati are first argued in the Provincial Counsels, from the sentence whereof, all causes are generally carried by Appeal to the Supreme Council erected at Malines; except the Provinces of Brabent, Gheldars, and Henn●ult, where causes receive their final determination. In criminal affairs, the Magistrates of Towns and Cities given sentence, who in this case have absolute power over their inhabitants; but judgement in criminal affairs wherein the Nobility or Titulati be concerned, is reserved to the Provincial Council; and this in short, is the Government in general of the Archduke's Provinces. The Arch Dukes have three chief Councels for the dispatch of such business as depend upon their own particular authority. The Council of State, the Privy Council, and the Council of the Treasury. The Council of State was anciently of great esteem. Affairs of greatest weight were therein handled and resolved, and the chiefest Lords of Flanders were want to be admitted thereinto; but now there remains nothing but the shadow or bore title thereof. The last revolutions occasioned, and do still produce great suspicions, and made it appear, that secrets are not secure when known to so many. Yet at this very time, the prime Lords of the Country do covet a place in that Council; and some Ecclesiastical person of highest esteem, hath still been placed therein. But the Privy Council keeps its ancient repute. All causes of Justice, or grace which depend upon the Supreme Authority of the Archduke's, are therein treated of; and the Councillors are usually seven, the Precedent being therein comprehended, and some one Ecclesiastical person. The Council of the Financies or Treasury, manage the Archduke's moneys, which come in most from the Provincial contributions; and some part from the Archduke's patrimonial estate, and some imposition of Taxes. The Archduke's Revenues or Incomes are then of three sorts: The first and greatest part consists in contributions, and is laid out in the maintenance of such Garrisons as are requisite in many Frontiers of those Provinces; one part only excepted, which together with the King's money is employed in payment of the Armies Horse. The moneys which come in by the other two ways, go towards the maintenance of the Archduke's house, and other their extraordinary expenses which daily occur. The Provincial contributions may come to about 200000 Florins a month, or twenty thousand pound sterling: in the time of war they come to 20005. pounds a month, but are now reduced to the aforesaid sum. The other two sorts of Incomes may rise to about sixty thousand Florins, or six thousand pounds a month; The Archduke's get but little from their patrimonial estates, because they are already almost all engaged; neither do they get much by their Imposition of Taxes, the whole Country being almost free from them by virtue of their privileges. The Province of Flanders is greatest, and richest, and consequently contributes much more then the others do. Brabant comes in the next place, which is likewise a plentiful Province, and of large extent: the Provinces of Artois, and Henault, contribute almost a like with it, and that of Silla but little less. There is not much difference among the others; for though the circuit of the Dukedom of Lucemburg be large, it is not very wealth; and as for the Dukedom of Ghelders' or Ghelderland, which is one of the greatest and richest Provinces of Flanders, the Archduke's possess but one fourth part thereof, the other three remaining under the Dominion of the United Provinces. No Relief at all comes from Burgovy, by way of Subsidy. Yet the Archduke's receive a considerable Revenue from thence, from the salt which is made in that Province; and somewhat also from some Patrimonial estate, which they have therein. So as we may make account, that all the Archduke's Revenues in the whole, come to 20008 pounds sterling a month. All the Archduke's Provinces are very well peopled. Brabant, Ghelderland and Flanders, and seated lowest, and abound most in Rivers, and consequently in Traffic; but the rest are more given to Arms, particularly those which coast upon France; which are Burgony and the Walloan Provinces; under which name is understood Artois, Hennault, Namure, Limburg, and that part of Lucemburg, which looks towards France: the City of Cambrey, and Country of Cambresis, being likewise therein comprehended. These are the Provinces which confine upon France; the others border some upon Germany, and some upon the United Provinces; and only Flanders joins upon the Sea. The Archduke's Militia consist of six hundred Curassiers, and one thousand two hundred of the Guard, which are divided into divers companies under the Lords of the chiefest Provinces; and they consist also in the men of those Garrisons which are maintained upon divers Frontiers as hath been touched upon before. Those of the Curassiers and Guard are notwithstanding kept in standing pay, but only their names enrolled; neither do they enjoy any thing thereby, in time of peace but some exemptions and prerogatives of small importance. In time of war they receive such pay as was assigned them when this Militia was first form; which was want to be held in great esteem, being almost wholly composed of Gentry; but at this time it consists altogether of the base sort of people, and is in all things else much fallen from its former repute; These are the proper Forces of the Archduke's, to boot with those which upon occasion may be raised out of their own Territories, which commonly produce Warlike men. The Archduke's Forces which have any relation to pay, are but weak, for their Revenue is but small, and such as cannot any ways supply expenses; so as many of their places are not so munited as were needful; and if they were besieged, 'tis to be feared they might easily be lost; but in all Kingdoms and great Dominions the expenses are generally greater then are the Revenues wherewith to maintain them, and the expenses of Flanders, by reason of the so many years war, and so very expensive, have been so excessive, as they have not only exhausted the Archduke's own Revenues, and treasury, and reduced themselves and their Countries still to greater necessities, but they have likewise consumed the King of Spain's Treasury, and left the body of so potent and great a Monarchy languishing and exhausted. CHAP. III Of the Archduke's Court. THE Archduke's Court is framed according to the manner of the other Austrian Princes; who have generally instituted their Courts in imitation of that of the house of Burgony in former times. The chief Officers are these three; the Lord high Steward; the Master of the Horse; and the Groom of the Stool. Under the Lord high Steward is comprehended 4 other Stewards of the House. Under the Master of the Horse 4 Querries; and all the other Gentlemen of the chamber which attended upon the Archduke's person are under the Groom of the Stool. Upon these Offices many other Orders of inferior persons do depend. The Carvers, Cuppers, and Suers, together with almost all the other household Officers are subordinate to the Lord high Steward. As are the pages and all that belong unto the Stables to the Master of the Horse; and those that attended upon the Archduke's Bed chamber, to the Groom of the Stool. These three are the chiefest Offices, and have no dependency one upon another; and therefore they all three strive for Prerogative; though in the common opinion, the office of Lord high Steward be the greatest. He hath liberty to enter at all hours into the Archduke's, and also into the Infanta's most private Lodgings: He hath the chief command of the Family, and hath a particular place in all public Audiences; and in the Chapel at Divine Service. Other Stewards depend chief upon the service of the Infanta. With her the first Lady of her Bed chamber hath the first place, and under her are the other Ladies and women servants. The place of chief Chaplain is also a place of great esteem, as also those of the Captains of the Guard. Which Guards are of three sorts. One of Archers, one of Halberdiers, and one of Lances and Harquebuses, And this last is the Guard which the Archduke hath, as General of the King of Spain's Army. These which I have named are the chiefest and principallest Offices of the Archduke's Court; there be also a great many inferior Offices. Count Agnover one of the prime Gentlemen of Spain, and a man of great desert, is at this time Lord high Steward. It is not many months since the Archduke's honoured him with this place; he having been many years Groom of the Stool; which place he still keeps, as also that of Captain of the Guard of Lances and Harquebuses. The place of Master of the Horse is at this present voided, by the death of the Count Soldre, Knight of the Golden Fleece, who did enjoy it. Den Piedro de Toledo is chief Chaplain; who was Ambassador from the Archduke's in the Court of Rome. Baron Barbanson is Captain of the Archers, and Count Frederig de Berg Captain of the Halberdiers▪ both of them Gentlemen of the best rank in those parts. The Infanta's chief Lady of her Bedchamber, is the Lady Schacencourt, who went from France into Spain to wait upon Queen Isabel, the Infanta's Mother. She is now very old, so as by reason of her great age her place is in many things officiated by her Niece the Lady Katherine Livia; who is a Lady of excellent parts, and much esteemed in Court: but by her own place the Lady Katherine is Cupbearer to the Infanta; who is waited upon at the Table by her Ladies as the Archduke is by the Gentlemen of the Chamber; both of them using to eat together both at Noon and Night. The Ladies, as also the Gentlemen of the Chamber are all of them principal personages, some of them having the Title of Princes, and being Knights of the Golden Fleece: so as the Archduke's Court, for what belongs to the service of their own persons, and generally in all things else may v●e with any other the most flourishing and splendid Court in Christendom. Their Court is the more ennobled by the usual residence of the Pope's Nuncio, and of divers Princes Ambassadors, and Ministers of State; there are three who receive the entertainment of Ambassadors; they of Spain, France, and England: though he of France is not styled by his King, with the Title of Ambassador, that he may given precedency to him of Spain, as is used in the Court of Flanders. The Archduke speaks to all Ambassadors, as also to all other Lords of how great quality soever they be in the third person, except they be such as are or may be Grandees of Spain, and to those he gives the Title of Signoria. But the Infanta useth 〈◊〉 Vos generally to all, and follows the Kingly style of Spain, in all things. The Arch Dukes imitate the customs of that Court, likewise in the service in their Chapel, and in the celebration of their public Feasts. And it may be said in general, that both these Courts walk in the same steps, unless it be that the Court of Brussels may seem in some sort more pleasing and delightful by reason of the Freedom of the Country, and by the intercourse of so many Nations which by reason of the Army are usually seen there. And in this point the Court of Flanders may doubtesly be said to exceed all those of Europe. CHAP. IV. Of the Arch Duke's Ministers of State. I Now come to the Arch Duke's Affairs, and to the Officers who do manage them. Their Affairs are of two sorts; the first concerns themselves; the other have respect to the Crown of Spain. The first are managed by Dutch Ministers, the second by Spanish: For their own Affairs, these are they who deal chief therein. In the Affairs of that Country, the Auditor Lewis Verreychen, their first Secretary of State; in Foreign correspondencies philip Prats Secretary of State also; for matter of Monies, Count Ester, of the house of M●●er ancy, chief Treasurer and Councillor of State; and in matters of Justice, at present in default of the Precedent, the Counsellor Massio, and the Councillor Pequio, both of them of the Privy Council. The Auditor Verreychen, is a man of excellent parts: He hath been employed in great Affairs, particularly upon the occasion of the last peace between France and England, and of the Truce concluded in Flanders; so as experience accompanies his other good parts. Philip P●a●s is commended for his integrity and diligence. Count Ester professeth to be spiritually given, and liberal, and by these two means hath wrought himself into a good opinion with the Archduke's, and hath gotten into Authority. Councillor Massio is a man of rare candour and singular goodness. Councillor piqu●o is a man of dispatch, and very able in the managing of public affairs; and having won credit in France, where he was Ambassador for some years from the Archdukes, he is employed as well in politic as judicial affairs. In such occasions as fall out in Germany, the Secretary Antonio Suares, is made use of, a Dutch man by birth, and one of the Archdukes ancient servants. For those things which do respect the King of Spain's interest in the Provinces of Flanders, these are likewise committed chief to the Archduke's care, out of two respects▪ The one by reason of the Archduke's being General of the King's Army here; and the other, for that the same Archduke and the Infanta his wife (their marriage proving sterile) are as it were Feoffees in trust in those States, which are after their decease to fall unto the crown of Spain again: so as executing the place rather of Governors then of Princes of Flanders, they therefore are very careful of the King's interest, as he who is to be their next successor. But to speak more particularly of those the King's Agents who are subordinate to the Archduke's; the weight of the Spanish affairs lies chief now upon three, the Marquis Ambrose Spinola, the Secretary john Mancicidor, and the Archduke's confessor; which confessor though he depend chief upon the Archduke, yet being by birth a Spaniard, and a man of great experience and abilities, he is employed in all affairs which do most import the King of Spain. Marquis Spinola's authority in this court is exceeding great. Five of the chiefest honours which the crown of Spain can bestow are in a short time conferred on him. He is of the Order of the Golden Fleece; he is one of the King's Council of State; he is Superintendent General of all the King's moneys which are laid out in Flanders; he is Campmaster General, with the title likewise of Governor of the Army; and finally, in this his last journey into Spain, he hath received the honour of a Grandee. 'Tis now 11 years since the Marquis led those Italian forces into Flanders, which were first to have served his bother Frederick's designs; he being dead, the Marquis succeeded in the same designs, to advance his Fortune by the Military way in Flanders, neglecting the pursuit of civil honours in Genua. Being egged on thus by these designs, which were occasioned chief by the emulation which was between him and Prince Doria, in their native country of Genua, he brought 8000 foot with him into Flanders, who come absolutely under his command. Being thus become a General before he could well be said to be a soldier, he soon after with equal forwardness ran into great reputation. Whereunto the taking of Oftend gave him the first rise. The two Fields of Friesland followed after, in both which the Marquis shown great vigilancy and valour, and knew very well how to supply the want of experience which he could not purchase in so short a time with every other proof of Military Government. He afterwards laboured with incredible industry and wisdom in bringing the difficult practices of the Truce to an end; which lasted above two years; and which made it appear how excellent he was at the managing of the most difficult enterprises both military and civil. He is a very vigilant Minister, and is so indefatigable in matter of business, as though he weary all men, he is never weary himself. In him there are many actions which seem contrary within themselves. On the one side he undertakes all things which he takes in hand with great fervency; and treats of them afterwards with extraordinary study and patience: Business seems to be to him a pastime; yet no man minds his business more then he, or is more intent therein: He seems to them who consider the splendid living in his house, to be given to Luxury; yet no man is more indifferent in all things which concerns his own person; he eats and drinks not minding it: his rest is not to rest; and especially when he is in the head of an Army, he shows himself no lesle their chief in bearing with hard ships, then in commanding over them; in ●ine, he is a Minister of singular valour and understanding; very advised in his Counsels, very tractable in his comportment, and very upright in the administration of public affairs: It cannot be said how averse he hath always been to self-interest, and hath appeared so much the closer handed in managing the King's moneys, as he hath been the more liberal of his own in his excessive expenses. His Authority (as I have said) is very great in this Court: All the most important affairs of the Army pass through his hands; and in all other the greatest affairs of State, he hath likewise always the principal part. Great is the Authority likewise of Secretary Mancicidor; he was secretary of the Army, when the Arch Duke being as then still Cardinal, come first to be Governor of these Countries, and hath from that time to this, discharged that place with great praise and integrity; he is come out of the discipline of Don john d' Ideachez, a very famous Officer; and he hath always and still doth profess to have his chief de pendency upon him. Mancicidor showed his integrity, and how far he was from self-interest, when the Truce was made; in the managing and conclusion whereof there was not a Spaniard but himself: for setting aside all by-respect of self-profit, he never rested from such Offices which made most for the Public service: and no doubt but that for what concerned himself, no man lost more by the Truce then he; for whereas in the time of War his place was worth ten or twelve thousand Crowns a year, now in the time of Truce 'tis hardly worth three thousand Crowns a year: He is austeer in his looks and behaviour; of a very composed nature; one that ruminats more then he speaks; but professeth great truth in what he says; and this his so clear proceeding, hath won him great credit and authority with the Archduke; though he shuns the making of it appear as much as he can: and so by refusing all company, and concourse, he is become the more fixed, by how much the lesle appearance he makes: He is an Officer very well esteemed of here, as also in Spain, in witness whereof the King made him of late one of his chief Council of War. But the Archduke's Confessor hath no lesser share in what concerns the Spanish Interest in Flanders. TWO Padre Maestro Fra Inego di Brizaela, of the Dominican Order, executes this place; he was placed therein by Philip the second, when the Archduke come to the Government of these Provinces; at which time Fra Inego for his eminency in Divinity, was Regent thereof in Rome: so as he hath been now about 17 years in Flanders, and hath still continued the same place to the great satisfaction of. the Archduke, and applause of all others: And though by reason of this his place, he hath no particular employment, save what belongs to the ruling of the Arch-dukes conscience; it may notwithstanding be said, that his is as it were a supreme Tribunal, whither affairs of all natures are brought. And the Arch Duke who as hath been said, imitates the actions of Philip the second in all things as much as he may, and who conforms himself generally to the mode of the Court of Spain, hath easily suffered this man to come by authority, for that great is the authority which the Kings of Spain's Confessors usually have; and for that this man is known to be very capable of all manner of business: But his authority is particularly increased since those two Journeys which three years ago he made into Spain; by one of which he wrought the King of Spain and his Councillors to given way unto the Truce; and by the other, that such assignment of moneys as was requisite should be established Now, since the last Voyage, and after his having seen and been conversant in so many affairs, the Archduke hath made him one of the Council of State: By this occasion the Confessor hath likewise left a great opinion of himself in the Court of Spain; and from that time to this 'tis thought that he may be employed by the King himself ●nd so come to greater preferments: and certainly he cannot be 〈◊〉 qualified for the managing of public affairs. No man can better understand a business, nor represent it better: he pleaseth by his aspect, persuades by his learning, moves by his piety; and his Religious Cloister-parts, joined to his civil worldly ones, in my opinion no King can desire a more noble and perfect Christian Councillor. It was necessary that I should a little expatiat myself upon these Three Officers, as those which are the Three Chiefest of this Court. CHAP. V What Intelligence the Archduke's hold with their Neighbours. THe Kingdoms and States which do neighbour upon the Archduke's Provinces are these: On the south the Kingdom of France, on the west that of England; on the north the United Provinces; and towards the east, their Country joins upon the states of many Germane Princes: upon those of Cleves and Juliers, of Trevers, Cullen, Liege, and they confince also on the side of France, for a long space upon Lorain; on which side the County of Burgony is parted from all the other Provinces. There are general jealousies between the Archduke's and these their neighbours, not out of any considerations of the Archduke's own persons, but for such as concern the King of Spain, as their successor. In former times when the Low Countries were in the possession of the House of Burgony, they had want to balance the Forces of their confining Princes, according to the times, now in one sort, now in another: and commonly the Dukes of Burgony, and Kings of England joined together to counterpoise the greatness of the Kings of France: who on the contrary, had always the Kings of Scotland for their adherents: but when the House of Austria grew to so great a height, the face of the Affairs of Europe began to altar; and the Princes correspondencies altered together with their Interests. The Forces of Europe being then weighed, and put into the scales; the French liked not their being environed by the States of the Crown of Spain by the way of the Pirenean Mountains; by Flanders, by the Fleets of the Mediterranean, and Ocean Sea. The English were afraid to see themselves begirt, and as it were placed between the arms of the Spanish Empire by reason of the same Fleets of the Ocean, which might be maintained in Spain and in Flanders: and generally all the Germane Princes, but especially the Heretics liked not to be flanked by so great a Power. All the neighbours did therefore join together in endeavouring to cut of Flanders from the Crown of Spain; and to their forces of Arms, the like of Heresy were joined; the new Sects whereof could not be so well secured in these northern Countries, being to contend with so great a power as was that of the seventeen Catholic Provinces of the Low Countries joined together under the obedience of the King of Spain. The War of Flanders broke forth then at first fomented by these external Aids, and by the same means did still continued, till the fire thereof was rather sweeped up then quenched by the twelve years' Truce: and if the neighbours have not prevailed in cutting of the whole Low Countries from the Crown of Spain; yet have they seen many Members severed from it, and that Crown deprived in a great part, of his former vast Empire upon the sea. And how hath it rejoiced them since, to see this new Commonwealth of the United Provinces, reduced into a fixed and vigorous Body, make head against it? a Commonwealth compounded of Rebels and Heretics: the soul of whose present Government is Lib●ety; and whose desire of enjoying it will still increase, by their assuefaction thereunto. The King of Spain being then to succeed unto the Archduke's, the forenamed neighbouring Jealousies keep yet alive; and will be much greater, when the King shall be possessed of these Provinces. At the present, since the Truce, better correspondency is held with all the neighbours, then was in time of the former War; which whilst it lasted, France and England never ceased furnishing the United Provinces with such Assistance as they needed. It is to be imagined that better Intelligence may better be held in particular between Spain and France, by reason of the double marriage which is contracted between the two Crowns. Though it may also be doubted, that this Intelligence may be regulated more by the consideration of Interest, then by that of Blood. And doubtlessly it is not to be believed that the French by reason of this alliance with the Crown of Spain, will disert them with whom they are joined in their particular friendship and confederacy with the United Provinces. The Examples fresh in memory of the late Kings of France, and the last King of Spain, may sufficiently show by their past alliances, what may hereafter be expected from the like: so as the most which at this present conjuncture of time, the Archduke's, and King of Spain can expect from the French, is that they will interpose themselves as occasion shall require in friendly Offices, either in prolonging the present Truce, or in turning it into a secure and lasting Peace. Thus far the conjunction of the two Crowns may be believed to prove advantageous for the Affairs of Flanders: whereas on the contrary it may be held for certain, that the French will appear openly against the Spaniards if upon any other conjuncture of time they shall go about to subjugate the United Provinces again by Force. But the Neighbourhood with the King of England is, and ever will be more jealous. The Rebellion of Flanders was chief favoured by Forces from England in Queen Elizabeth's days; and the now King James Treads in the Queen's steps, in his succession to that Kingdom: and is much the more pertenacious therein, and more inveterate in his hatred to the Catholic Church, by his having made himself supreme Head of the Church of England, not only by Title, but more by his Doctrine and Learning. He hath endeavoured, and still will endeavour as much as lies in the King of England's power, to prejudice the Affairs of Flanders, that he may thereby also wound the Catholic Church, which was the end likewise of the late Queen. He is likewise most jealous of the Spanish Forces in Flanders; as well by the Example of what the late King of Spain endeavoured against the aforesaid Queen from those parts; as for that Flanders is the safest refuge which those Catholics have who withdraw or fly from his Kingdoms: so as to boot with the suspicions which the French have always received and given in the Neighbourhood of Flanders, those of Heresy are added in the English, which consequently make the Rent greater between these Countries, and those which are under the King of England. The Archduke's are chief jealous of the Neighbourhood of the United Provinces; and though Arms be laid aside by reason of the Truce; yet the jealousies on both sides continued still the greater: which will turn again (as may be believed) to the taking up of Arms, when the Truce shall be expired. The United Provinces nourish their people as much as they can, in fear of the King of Spain, which is considered more by them in the persons of the Archduke's, then by any of the Neighbouring Princes; and this they endeavour now no lesle then before, to the end that their people may so much the willinger concur to the maintenance of such Forces as they do still keep on foot since the Truce, in great numbers by heavy Impositions. Thus they live in perpetual jealousy of the Archduke's, and Crown of Spain: but they occasion likewise no lesle jealousies on their behalves out of so many and so known considerations: nor is is to be doubted, but that upon occasion of this Free Commerce, they will by all secret ways endeavour both to corrupt the Loyalty and contaminate the Religion of these yet obedient Provinces. The neighbourhood between the Heretical States of Germany and those of the Archduke's, is likewise suspicious, and will be now much the more since the Dukedoms of Cleves and Juliers are fall'n into the hands of Heretic Princes: from which parts the rebellion of Flanders was always likewise fomented; and by the example of what is past, the Heretics will assuredly govern themselves in the future: and it may be believed that on the contrary the forces of Spain will do what in them lies to their prejudice. The conformity of Catholic Religion hath occasioned the better correspondency between the States of Flanders and the Archbishoprics of Cullen and Trevers, and the Bishopric of Liege. Though sometimes these Forces by reason of the irremediable necessity of War, have not been able to forbear using some violences upon the aforementioned Countries. Lorraine hath scaped the best of any; and consequently the neighbourhood on that side hath stood and stands still upon better terms then any other: and truly Spain hath want to make great esteem of the alliance of the Dukes of Lorraine with their King, and of the Commodity which they thereby receive in passing such of the King's Forces as come from Italy into Flanders, through that Country. CHAP. VI Of the Army which the King of Spain maintains in Flanders. TRUCE is a suspension of Arms, and a certain medium between war and peace; but though this affair of Flanders had been an absolute peace, and not a Truce, for a determinat time, yet must an Army still have been maintained here; these Countries being environed with suspicious neighbours, and by reason of homebred dangers which some evil humours even of these very Provinces might produce. The Army was then only lessened here, after the Truce was agreed on, and 'twas resolved, to cashier such who upon occasion might be readiest to be raised again, and to keep such in pay, as would be more difficult to be listed hereafter. All the Dutch foot were dismissed, unless it were some few, which shall be mentioned hereafter; and the Spaniards, Italians, Burgonians, and Irish, together with a select number of the ancientest Wallouns; and because Spain was exhausted of moneys, and Flanders much more, it was determined that for the lessening of so great expenses, a strength of Soldiery should be kept on foot, as should only be sufficient upon all occasions, to withstand the first shock, till such time as new Forces might be raised; and thus the army was then reduced to about 12000 foot, and 1600 horse, all choice men. There are three Brigadoes of Spaniards, two of Italians, one of Burgonians, one of Irish, and three of Wallouns; and 18 Companies of horse, distinguished into Launciers, Curassiers, and Harchebugers; eleven under Spanish Captains, four under Italians, and there under-Captains of these parts: to these are added some choice Companies of Spanish foot, together with some Dutch, as hath been said; and a very small addition of such English and Scotch Catholics as were received of late years into the Army, after the peace made with the King of England. The Spanish foot may in all be about 4500; the Italians 2000, the Irish 1000; the Burgonians 800, the Wallouns 2000 the Germane about 300, and the English and Scots 200: the horse are mixed of Spaniards, Italians, Wallouns, and others of this Country, which amount in all to about 1600 horse, as hath been said; there are besides a certain requisite number of Officers for the Artillery, maintained, but these since the Truce are but very few; to all these sort of people is added many Trattenuti, entertained persons about the Archduke's person, and many other Tranenuti about the Army; both of which are thus termed, because they are paid apart, and are not comprehended within the ordinary body of the foot and horse: This is shortly the Soldiery which is maintained now by the King of Spain in Flanders, all which are paid with his moneys, except such horse as the Archduke's do pay, as hath been said before. This Army is like a great Animal which lives in continual voracity; so as it needs much food to maintain it in requisite vigour. The provision of moneys which for this end is sent from Spain is 90 thousand crowns a month 70000 whereof is spent in payment of the Army; and the rest upon other occasions. The expense of the Artillery is now very little; and generally all that was needful for field-service in the time of War: an Army drawn into the field may be said to be a portable City, governed by Military Laws, and environed every where with Iron walls; and therefore at such a time requires all those things which is requisite for a walled City; whence it is that expenses in time of war must needs be excessive. They are now much moderated by the Truce; for where the King paid in the last war, whereof Marquis Spinola was General, 300000 crowns a month, he pays no more now then what hath been said, and the Archduke's proportionably have much lessened theirs. Very many are the Officers which are requisite for a well-governed Army; of which many are more for the pen then sword; of these the Secretary of the Army is in greatest esteem; and next him the Muster-master-general, and then the Pay-master-General, and the Tellers; all which Officers have their under-officers. Than the Justice which is used as well in causes civil as criminal, is administered by an Auditor-General, accompanied with divers others, who are likewise subordinate to him. But the chief Commanders who have the Government of the Army, are the Camp-Master-General, the General of the Horse, and the General of the Artillery; in the Body of Foot, the Camp-masters with such Officers as depend upon them, follow next after; in the Body of horse, the Lieutenant General, the Commissary General, and the Captains of horse with their inferior Officers; and in the body of the Artillery the Lieutenants, and those who are called Gentlemen of the Artillery; together with those of inferior place who belong to that Office: There are likewise two Church-Ministers in the Army, the Viccar-general, upon whom depend such Church men who are employed in such spiritual functions as do occur; and the Administrator of the King's Hospital, which is continually maintained in the Army for the cure of diseased and wounded Soldiers. All the Nations whereof this Army is composed have at all times given great testimony of their valour: continual emulation hath been between the Spaniards and Italians; the Spaniard always pretend to superiority over the Italian; and the Italian to equality with the Spaniard. And the contension between these two Nations, hath sometimes produced dangerous disorders, and disturbed divers good successes which in several occasions were very hopeful. The Soldiery are now distributed into Garrisons, and almost all of them upon the Frontiers; and their Commanders are generally ancient and experienced Soldiers; but by reason of the so many years war, and through the so many mutinies which have happened, the Discipline wherein the Army had want to flourish is much corrupted. Of late years there are few soldiers who have not their wives; and between women and the love of their children, of necssity Military vigour must fail and grow lesle: nothing more then this hath reduced the Soldiery into poverty; poverty hath been the chiefest cause of mutinies; and nothing hath more corrupted the Discipline, and more indammag'd the King's affairs then mutinies; which through these disorders hath suffered almost as much by their own Forces, as by those of the Enemy; but as in human bodies the older they grow, the longer they do languish; so this Army of Flanders by so long a war, hath felt the infirmities of age, and the defects thereof; and nothing hath been judged better for the cure thereof then rest, which the Truce hath now caused these Countries to enjoy. And this may suffice for what concerns Temporal Affairs, as I proposed unto myself at first. Now I will proceed to the Ecclesiastical, which are proper to the Nuntios, as they represent the Apostolic Ministers. The Second PART of the RELATION of FLANDERS. I Aught to accounted it a great happiness to me, that I have been a servant to the Apostolic Sea in Flanders, in this employment of Nuntio, which by reason of its so many particular circumstances, is to be esteemed so remarkable. I have negotiated here between two of the greatest Princes of Christendom; in one of the prime Courts of Europe; in one of the gallantest Countries that can be seen; in a public School of the noblest actions that can be undertaken. These Countries (as hath been said) are environed by France, England, the United Provinces, and Germany: and such is the relation between the affairs of Spain and these of Flanders, as both of them may be said to join in one common and reciprocal Government. These Countries do every day entertain and transmit great store, and great variety of public affairs: not considerable alteration can hap among the neighbours; which hath not some reflection here; nor can there any thing of importance arise here, whereof the neighbours do not partake. In these six years now neare at an end, since I come to Flanders, great affairs have happened in these parts: The Treaty of Truce endured two years, which began to be handled at my first arrival; and this business was so long in contriving, by reason of the difficulties that were met withal, in ripening and dissipating the humours which so long a war had aggregated. Almost presently after the Truce, two great commotions arose; the one through the affairs of Cleves and Juliers, when the succession of that House failed; the other by the Prince of Cunde's flying from France, who was received into protection in these Provinces by the King of Spain, and the Archduke's: and as long as Henry the 4th King of France lived there was still danger, that for the one or the other of these, and finally for them both, bitter war was to arise in these parts; nor did the Heretics for all this loose their forwardness in the affairs of Cleves and Juliers: they took the Town of Juliers by force, and threatened Cullen; so as it behoved Flanders to oppose her Forces to their threats, and so that City was secured: but for all this the Heretics did not forbear, nor yet afterwards, to raise up innovations on that side by the alteration of Government which they changed in Aquisgrane, and by the fortifying of Mulen, which they did much to the prejudice of Cullen. On the behalf of England; at my first coming hither, the Earl of Tirone's flying from Ireland happened, who was received in Flanders, whereat the King of England was much offended; and the said King continued still in his suspicions, that some of the English Catholics who were conspirators in the gunpowder-treason, were secured here in Flanders; and in the war which the same King hath made with his Army of books come forth under his own name, against the authority of the Church of Rome, the first blows were felt here, and here it was requisite that the first defence should be made. But very Tragical have the events been which have happened in Germany, since I come into Flanders; which have all had relation to this Archduke, by reason of his nearness of blood, and other interest with the two brothers which took up arms one against another, representing scenes and spectacles so full of horror. In the first commotions the Emperor Radulphus was almost driven out of Prague, and in the second, almost taken in the Castle; bereft in the first of a great part of his Territories, and almost of all of them in the last. The only name of Emperor remained to him, that death might bereave him of some one of his past glories. The Electors after this shown a great alienation to the succession of King Mathias. Neither were the doubts small that in such a crisis of time the Heretics would molest the new Election of the Emperor by force of Arms. And that particularly they were to conspire with the United Provinces of Flanders in these their designs. So as it behoved to use all possible endeavour and industry to induce the Electors to favour King Mathias, to the end that the Universal Tranquillity might not be altered; in which it may be truly said that no body laboured more on this side, then the Archduke Alber●us. He first was very earnest in procuring the general quiet; and then doubled his diligence in the new Election. First, in the behalf of his brother, and then in keeping himself from being chosen. And perhaps his diligence in the latter was more necessary then in the former: by the declared disposition which the Electors showed towards him, who were already inclined to keep the Empire in the house of Austria, but not as yet, to have King Mathias to succeed. Which action of the Archduke's in endeavouring all those means to shun the Empire, which might have been used to obtain it, deserves to be for ever recorded to posterity; so well did he know how to govern his own opinion with such moderation and judgement, knowing what was best for the common welfare of Germany, and the particular good of his own house. The general joy of Mathias being chosen Emperor was afterwards so much the greater, by how much greater the fears were that his succession might prove turbulent and dangerous. And thus at the present do the public Affairs in these Northern parts of Europe enjoy this Calm. In my time then have the above mentioned occurrences happened both here at home, and here about's; in which, together with an infinite number of other Affairs of very great consequence Flanders hath had her share, and hath made her neighbours taste thereof. But of all others I have ever esteemed it my greatest good fortune, to have had this place conferred upon me in a time when a suspension of Arms was agreed upon for some months, and was afterwards established by a Truce for twelve years. I hereby seen a large Field opened unto me to come by a full knowledge of the Ecclesiastical Affairs in this Country, which is under the Nunciature of Flanders, and to endeavour some cure for the parts as they may be termed of this body, which the inveterate indisposition of so long a War had left infirm and weak. There was hardly any memory left of the Apostolic Nuncio's visitations, through the impediment which the noise of War had given to these Ecclesiastical Functions. Great also were the evils which Heresy had produced in the past calamity of these Provinces. A great many Churches ruined; famous Monasteries destroyed; the people's Religion in many places corrupted; the Discipline of the Catholic Clergy in sundry sorts disordered; and a thousand other sad footsteps, and deplorable Records of the fury thereof being left. I could then acquaint Rome fully with the estate of Ecclesiastical Affairs on one side; and on the other side apply such remedies here upon the very places themselves, as could proceed from my weakness, by making many journeys in visiting personally all these Provinces, which remain under the Archduke's obedience. And because the Truce had made way for free commerce in the United Provinces, which are likewise under this Nunciature, I had great conveniency also, to inform myself fully what the condition of the Catholic Religion was in them. I first acquainted Rome with all things needful; neither did my labour prove afterwards fruitless which through divine blessing, I employed in preserving those Relics of Religion which yet remain in the abovenamed Provinces. By means of this Truce likewise, I had the better opportunity to discover the state of Religion in the King of England's Dominions, and to provide for many things tending to the benefit of such Catholics as are there; whose Affairs have likewise great relation to the Nunciature of Flanders. And these are the Ecclesiastical Affairs about which till now I have employed my time. Reassuming then the order which I spoke of at first, I will treat of each head in the manner which I have proposed; that is, first of the state of Religion in these Provinces of the Archduke's, and then of the state thereof in Holland and the other United Provinces; and lastly, I will show you the condition thereof in the Kingdoms of England, Scotland, and Ireland. CHAP. I Of the state of Religion in the Archduke's Provinces. THE Government of the Ecclesiastical Affairs in the 17 Provinces of the Low Countries, did anciently depend upon four only Bishops. On the Bishops of Cambrey, of Utricht, of Tornay, and of Arras. Only one part of Brabant, and one part likewise of Lucemburg▪ and almost the whole Country of Limburg, were under the Bishopric of Liege, and on the same Country of Lucemburg, almost all the other Bishoprics which do surround it, did extend themselves; as Mets and Trevers on the side of Germany, Tul, and Ver●une towads France, and Lorraine; but the Countries near unto Flanders, being in a great part overrun with heresy, and the evil thereof being crept even hither, King Philip the second obtained of Pope Paul the fourth, that new Bishoprics should be erected, the easilier to hinder those evils which was feared from without, and also to remedy those which began to operate in these Countries. The new Erection was this. Cambrey and Utricht, which were before but bore Bishoprics, were made Archbishoprics; and the Archbishopric of the City of Malines, was founded a new. The new Bishoprics were these; Nimigham in Ghelderland, Harlem in Holland, Middleburg in Zealand, Deventer in Overisell, Leverden in Friesland, and Groninghen in the Province of that Name. These together with the Archbishopric of Utricht were erected in the Countries which are at present under the United Provinces; and are now since the rebellion and the last war extinct. The others were Antwerp and Balduke, in the Dukedom of Brabant, Ruremont in Ghelderland; Gaunt, Bruges, and Ipri in Flanders; Saint Omers in Artois; and Namures in the County of Namures: The first fix were placed under the Archbishopric of Malines; and the other two together with that of Turney and Arras, under the Archbishopric of Cambrey. There are then two Archbishoprics, and ten Bishoprics, in those Provinces which remain under the obedience of the Archduke's. The abovenamed Churches are generally poor; except that of Cambrey, which is of an ancient and noble foundation: the Churches of Torney and Arras are nobly enough endowed, both their foundations being very ancient: So as in these three of Cambrey, T●rney and Arras, Divine Service is exercised with much dignity and splendour. The other Bishoprics have but small Incomes, and therefore most of them want Seminaries. The beginnings of a Seminary were laid some years ago in Antwerp; and it may be hoped that by little and little it may have farther progress. Another is lately founded in Malines, and is already in very good condition: another is begun in S. Omer. Gaunt, Bruges, Ipri, Bal●uke, and Ruremond have noon; and have but little hopes ever to have any, for want of necessary commodities. The Churches of Cambrey, Torney, Arras, and Namures, have no Seminaries apart; but maintain one between them all in the University of Douai; where according to the power of each of them, they maintain a proportionable number of Students: But of all other Cities, two good Seminaries if it were possible to have their Foundations laid, would be very useful in Antwerp, and in Gaunt. These are the two Cities of all the Archduke's Provinces which are most infected with heresy. Antwerp chief by reason of Traffic, which from the very first opened the Gates to the mingling, and corruption of Sects, together with the Traffickers who introduced them. A good Seminary would in particular be of great use and advantage to this Diocese: and though there hath always been need thereof, yet now more then ever, for that since the Truce a good part thereof is under the Temporal Dominion of the United Provinces. Which though they promised under their hands to the late King of France, not to meddle with the exercise of the Catholic Religion in those parts, which are under the Spiritual Government of the Bishopric of Antwerp; yet their Heretic Ministers do every day endeavour novelties, and go about as much as in them lies to spread abroad the infection of their Sects in those parts. Gaunt is likewise a Merchandizing City, having three Rivers which run through the midst of it, and are of great conveniency for Traffic. But to boot with the contagion of the neighbouring Sectaries, the people of Gaunt have willingly suffered themselves to be poisoned with the Licentiousness of Liberty. In former times those of Gaunt were always somewhat contumacious and licentious against their Princes: and have since shown the like aversion against the ancient Religion: So as a great part of this City is infected with Heresy; and certainly it would be a great advantage as well to the City as to the Diocese, if there were a good Seminary there. Bruges and Ipri are either wholly free from Heresy, or but little infected therewithal; and their Diocese are like unto them. Balduke is a very Catholic City, but some parts of the Diocese is not altogether so. Ruremond is a very poor Church; almost not at all endowed; the people within the Town are well enough affected, but without, they are somewhat infected. The City of Malines is very clear from Heresy. Some parts of the Diocese are notwithstanding polluted, particularly Brussels, a Town of large Circuit, and for concourse of people much greater then Malines itself. The Cities of Cambrey, Arras, Saint Omers, and Namures, together with their Diocese are generally very constant in the Catholic Religion. Torney even since the first commotions in Flanders suffered itself to be involved in the contagion of Heresy, as also Valenciana, a large Town, and of great Traffic; it is under the Spiritual Jurisdiction of the Archbishopric of Cambrey; except one part thereof which is subject to the Bishopric of Torney. So as in both these places the seeds of Heresy remain yet: But the Heretics dare not discover themselves in any of the said places, neither by giving any scandal, nor by doing any unlawful act in Religion, which may be known; concerning which the Magistrates, and Churchmen are very vigilant; but chief the Archduke's themselves; who are as diligent therein as can be desired, not only by the example of their own extraordinary zeal, but by means of their Supreme Authority. All the abovenamed Churches are provided with indifferent good Ministers, and generally with good Clergy within the Cities. Good Curates are likewise provided for the Diocese; and except it be in the Provinces of Brabant, Flanders, and Ghelderland, the Country is well enough provided of them. In those three Provinces there is great scarcity of them, because the Flemish Tongue is only used there; so as the other Provinces cannot supply their needs. But in all the others the French Tongue is used, and by reason of a Seminary which they have in common among them, in the University of Douai, they may provide Curates for such Churches as have need of them. This University serves chief for the Students of the Walloen Provinces, and for the others that lie more inward, where they speak French, as in the Provinces of Torney and Silla. But for those parts of the Country where they speak Dutch, the University of Lorain serves for the same purpose. These two Universities are in the Archduke's Provinces; that of Lorain is very ancient, and keeps still in great reputation; that of Douai was built by Philip the second for the better service of the neighbouring Provinces, but Lorain is far beyond it for the concourse of Scholars, Eminency of Professors, and for Foundations of many Colleges wherewith it is beautified. These two Universities show great reverence & obsequiousness towards the holy See; and particular care is had in each of them, for putting the Council of Trent in practice, they being very zealous in preserving the purity of the Catholic Faith. The Bishops and Curates in their several Offices do particularly labour that the Council be put in practice; and as for the secular Ecclesiastical Order there is not therein much to be added. Residencies are there observed, and incompatibilies forborn; and all other Ecclesiastical Functions are generally exercised according to the Decrees of the Council, and they daily reform their customs. But as for the regular Order, to say truth the excess of liberty in the Monasteries, especially in those of women, and more particular in those of the Nuns of Saint Benedict, and Saint Bernard, is very great. The Council was never admitted of among them; nor is it to be hoped that it ever will be, because the chief Monastery as well of Women as of Men are for the most part in Campania; so as it would be too difficult a business to reduce them to strict Cloister observance; Moreover they are taught to receive in strangers, either through the visits of Friends, or for the conveniency of Travellers. And although the Guests of the Nuns Monasteries are placed without the Cloistures, yet this is done with too much familiarity of Secular conversation. This is the ancient custom of the Country; and truly but few scandals are observed to ensue hereupon; for liberty itself serves for a remedy to liberty; by the so great and usual custom of conversation; and for that the people of these parts are but little given to sensuality, and extraordinarily candid in their behaviours. Very free is likewise the form of living, which is here observed in several Chapters of the Canons, whereof there are three; all of an ancient Foundation. One in Mons, another in Nivella, and another in Mabuosa. Their Institution is to serve in the Choir at Divine Service, as do other Canonists; and they wear a very grave Church habit: For what remains, they live dispersed in divers houses in those towns where the Chapters are erected, and here they are clothed as Seculars are; they receive all manner of visits, they dance and rejoice, and except it be the Title, they retain almost nothing of Ecclesiastical persons: So as one would say, whatsoever is Sacred in the Church, were utterly profane when out of it. All these she Canons are of the chief Families of Flanders: They all of them do usually marry afterwards; and those who will not marry live in perpetual chastity, continuing their Function; and in the same freedom as formerly; and yet they do thus defend their chastity, merely with the weapons of natural goodness and modesty. As if they were enclosed within the Walls of the severest and most unaccessible cloisters. So much doth the good natures of some prevail over severe Laws in many others. But to return to the Monkly Order; the liberty thereof, as I have said, is great; and 'twill be very hard to work a reformation therein out of the abovesaid reasons. The Archduke's themselves inflamed with a desire to see the Ecclesiastical Government set in a good way, have much endeavoured that the Monasteries might be more strictly kept, but sufficient remedies to remove the difficulties could never be found. They forbear not notwithstanding to apply all such remedies as they are able to work this effect; and without doubt they are of great use: For they nominate according to the Apostolical Indulgence, which they enjoy, such persons for Abbots and Abbesses who are thought do best deserve those places. There are many, and generally many rich Monasteries in these countries; in particular the Order of Saint Benedict, Saint Bernard, and the White Friars. The Abbots, and Abbesses have their Lodgings apart in the Monasteries, as also their Table and Revenues; and do enjoy little less then a free propriety of their goods: And regular Government (as hath been said) is much relaxt among them. The mendicant Orders keep indifferent good Discipline; and particularly the Franciscan Friars, after having introduced into them some convents of the Recollectia. Now that the Reform Carmelites are likewise entered into these Provinces, the Discipline of the Covents of ancient Foundation, may perhaps in time also grow better, as 'tis no more then needs. Those of the Order of Saint Austin behave themselves well enough, but the Dominicans much better. Two other Orders of Votaries have of late greatly flourished in Flanders; the Capushins and Jesuists, both which Orders have been admitted into all the Cities and principal places; and the good cannot be greater, then that which is gathered particularly from the Jesuists; by their institution of instructing youth in learning and piety. And this may suffice for what concerns the state of Religion in the Catholic Provinces of Flanders. CHAP. II Of the state of Religion in Holland, and the other United Provinces. IT will be necessary now to seek out the remainder of Catholics, who have continued in the United Provinces after the late war; amid the darkness and errors of heresy. At the same instant almost that by their rebellion they flew from the King of Spain's obedience, they likewise parted from the obedience of the Catholic Church. The first that took up arms against the crown of Spain, were Holland and Zealand, as also the first that flew from the Catholic Church. The rebellion spread abroad afterwards in the other Provinces, and they served for example one to another in making the Government of them all equal. They imitated one another likewise in embracing Heresy, out of a design to oppose the Catholic Religion professed by the Spaniards, and by this means, to strengthen the separation from their Empire the more, So as in the uniting of the Provinces, their government passed wholly into the hands of the Heretics. And what was first done by Holland and Zealand, was done likewise by the other five Provinces, which from time to time joined with them. I will now acquaint you with the condition of the Catholic Religion in these very Provinces; but I judge it first requisite briefly to given you an account of their Heresies. The abovenamed Provinces have admitted of many sects. But the sect which reigns generally among them, is Calvinism; and of this sect are they who govern. The United Provinces chose rather to apply themselves to this, then to any other, because their rebellion was chief maintained by the arms of Calvinists; which were continually poured into them from France, England and Germany. Thus making religion serve the interest of State, according to the custom of other Heretics, the United Provinces did all of them embrace Calvinism; and would have it to be chief exercised among them; and that the Catholic religion, which had for so many years flourished among them, should for as much as in them lay, be wholly suppressed. They have also many Lutherans mingled among them, who are the remainders of that general deluge of Lutheranism, which at the first over-flowed almost all Germany, and the neighbouring Countries. Great likewise is the number of Anabaptiss, and some Davidists. Puritans are likewise there permitted; who are the most rigid Calvinists, who will not acknowledge any Authority in their Political Magistrates over the Government of their Heretical Ministers. And these are all English Puritans, who by occasion of commerce frequent Holland and the rest of the United Provinces. These are the Sects wherewith the people of these parts are contaminated in point of religion. Yet no public exercise is permitted among them but Calvinism; nor is there any other Doctrine permitted to be taught in their Schools. All other Sects are suffered in private families; which may notwithstanding be termed public, for they are preached in spacious places, capable of all concourse. The greatest number of Heretics are Calvinists, who are dispersed throughout all their Provinces, and their Government is alike in each of them. The greatest part of Anabaptiss are in Friesland, and in the farthest Northern parts of Holland. Friesland is also chief infected with Davidists. The most Lutherans are in the City and Province of Groninghen; part of them remaining likewise in Amsterdam, by reason of Traffic. The English Puritans are almost all of them likewise out of the same respect in Amsterdam; and some of them by occasion of Merchandising live in Middleburg; So then in all parts, and in every corner of the United Provinces, the barkings and howl of so many Sectarists may be heard; who do notwithstanding all join in opposing the Catholics, though there be great divisions and differences between themselves; even as ravenous Beasts laying aside their rancour among themselves, join in turing it unanimously to pray upon the milder. I will now treat as briefly as may be of the Catholics; whereof there be great remainders left in the United Provinces, though the same persecutions which were at first begun against them continued stil. But they have not been, nor are they yet so rigorous by much as in England, & in other countries, for the aforesaid Provinces are not permitted by the form of their government to use such rigour; and having been always so much busied among foreign arms, they might apprehended some domestic tumults, if they should have proceeded with too much violence against the catholics; good numbers whereof are still among them to boot that their government having much of popular in it, and all of them applying themselves to traffic; the correspondency in merchandising & in alliances hath always been very great between the Heretics and Catholics: So as the vicinity of blood hath caused love between many of them; and the occasion of Merchandizing hath coupled together the interests of divers others; and by these means the Catholic Religion hath found some tolerable connivancy, in the concealed and as it were stolen exercise thereof, wherein it was necessary to be restrained in those parts. Most of the Catholieks in these parts are in Holland: The meaner sort of people are most corrupted; and those Foreigners who when the rebellion of Flanders first began fled from these Catholic Provinces to the united ones, that they might live the more Licentiously in Heresy. There are many Catholics yet remaining in the Province of Utricht, and particularly in the City of Utricht, as likewise in Ghelderland, and in the Province and City of Groninghen; there are many likewise in Overisell, and Friesland; but very few in Zealand; the difficulty and dangers of exercising the Catholic Faith being much greater there then in any of the other aforesaid Provinces. In former times a particular addiction to Divine Worship, and Sacred things did abound in all of them; great were the number of Temples and Monasteries in all parts; and the people's piety generally very great. And the natural candidness of their manners was also accompanied with the pure candour of Religion; and women were very much given to Cloister lives. The Secular Priests and Religious Votaries who live in these parts are maintained by the charity of such Catholics as live in the United Provinces, and by such means as they receive from abroad. There be many Secular Priests among them; but few Votaries. The Secular Priests Supply the place of Curates among Catholics in the places where they live. The most of them as also of the Votaries, are in Holland; there being many Catholics in that Province, and the commerce more frequent; next unto Holland most Catholics and Priests live in the Province of Utricht; Utricht having been long a City of Ecclesiastical Principality, and the people therein having been much inclined to the Catholic Religion, and much given to sacred things. There are but few Priests in the other Provinces; partly, because their number is not sufficient to serve for all places; and partly, because they proceed more rigorously against them in the other Provinces, then in Holland and Utricht. All these Priests depend upon the Government of an Apostolical Vicar, who was lately instituted with subordination to the Nuncio of Flanders; and for his greater authority, and that he might execute the Office of an Ordinary in those Provinces, the Title of Archbishop of Philippi was afterwards given him. He therefore runs over thither sometimes, exercising his charge in such sort as he may; but the settled Residency of the present Vicar is in Cullen; where by his means particularly, a Seminary of Students, most part of which are Hollanders, is to very good purpose erected. This Seminary is chief maintained by the alms of the Catholics in Holland, and other United Provinces. And the Scholars there study Religion and human Learning. From thence they are sent to the University of Loven, to study Theology; and are daily sent from thence into these Provinces to husband the Catholic Faith. The Votaries have their particular Heads on whom they depend. Diverse dissensions and disputes have oftentime past between the Secular Priest, and the Votaries. The Priests have never been so willing as they aught to have been that Votaries should enter among them, and have many times complained, that their Faculty was too much enlarged in the administration of Spiritual Affairs; as do the Votaries on the other side, that the Priests have many times opposed them. So as upon these and some other occasions, divisions have sometimes fallen out between them. But they live now together in concord, their past differences being in a good part composed: By means whereof the Heretics have sometimes war●'d more against our cause, then by the weapons of their own Sects. Heresy then reigns in the United Provinces in manner as hath been said; and on the contrary the Catholic Religion groans under heavy yokes among them. But by God's assistance these groans and miserable afflictions of Catholics will one day also cease: For it hath been observed in all Ages, that the true Church hath ever flourished most, when she hath been most oppressed by her Enemies. And on the other side all Heresy hath been ever seen to burst in pieces, and perish through its own venom, when it hath ceased to vomit it out. CHAP. III Of the state of Religion in England. LET us now consider in what condition the Kingdoms of England, Scotland, and Ireland are in point of Religion: And first, for England; 'tis known and acknowledged, that the Catholic Religion did not flourish more in any part of Europe, then in that Kingdom, till Henry the eighth his Apostasy. No Prince whatsoever had purchased more Fame for his zeal to the good of the Church, then the said Henry, by the gallant works, whereby he endeavoured to maintain the Popedom against the Forces of other Princes in divers troubles in Italy; nor in defending the Catholic Religion against the Heresy of Luther, and the Princes who adhered to him therein, in the commotion occasioned thereby in Germany. His Book of the seven Sacraments, which he composed and published likewise then against Luther's self, was a particular example of singular Piety; nor did he think any thing added more to his greatness then the title which Leo the 10th conferred upon him of Defender of the Faith. How he come afterwards to dote upon Anne of Bullen, and how having first vented his hatred against the Pope, he afterwards separated himself wholly from the Catholic Church, and growing still more perverse, did at last endeavour to suppress that religion which he had so gloriously defended before, are things sufficiently known; and which will always be the most to be lamented and fatal, which can be represented upon a Catholic Theatre. But though Heresy took firm root in England in Henry's time, yet was there no settled form of the exercise thereof there. King Edward the sixt a Prince within age succeeding him; Zuinglius his Doctrine was chief embraced. The Catholic religion may be said presently after to receive new life again, and to be again slain in Queen Mary's succession to the Crown, and her so soon death. After the which, Queen Elizabeth coming to succeed her in that Kingdom; that form of Heresy was confirmed which was called Parliamentarian; the Parliament having interposed its Authority therein, to the end that that might be the only Religion received in all parts of her Dominions. In the chief Dogmas Calvin was followed; whose sect began then to rise, and increased every day; and in the outward Government the first form of Catholic worship was retained: Episcopacy being continued, together with almost all the rest of the secular Clergy in former times: the antient● Ecclesiastical maintenance was left to the Bishops and the rest of the Heretical Clergy: as for the regular Orders, they were long before quite abolished, and all Monasteries either ruined, or turned together with their Revenues totally to profane uses. This form of Government which was introduced in England in the Queen's time, is since maintained by the now King. The sect of Protestant Calvinists reigns now there, called as I have said, Parlementarian. The English Protestant's are also called by another name Anglo calvinisti, viz. English Calvinists; to distinguish them from those of France, and of other parts, where Calvinism is followed in its more rigid and pure form, as it was taught at first, and which hath been since so largely diffused by the Church of Geneva: together with the Protestant Calvinists, there are also many direct Calvinists in England, whom they call Puritans; both these sects do agreed in almost all their Dogmata: but they differ in many things touching Government and exterior rites. The Protestant's retain the ancient degrees of the same Ecclesiastical dignities and offices, on which the spiritual Government did depend in the time of the Catholic Religion. The Puritans on the contrary, throw away all supereminency of degrees, and all conformity of ministry with the Catholic Church, and will have the ancientest and fittest among them to have the only care of spiritual matters among them; they do wholly deny the King's Primacy in spiritual affairs; whereas the Protestant's acknowledge the King to be the supreme Head of the Church of England, as they term it; thus these two sects do justle in many things; but the Protestant Profession is that which reigns. Archbishops, Bishops, and next them the inferior Clergy of Deacons, Arch-Deacons, Curates, and others, are subordinate to the King's supreme spiritual Government. There are only two Archbishops in England; the one of Canterbury, the other of York; and 25 Bishops; three of which only are under the Archbishopric of York; and all the rest depend upon Canterbury: the Archbishop whereof keeps the title of Metropolitan, and is as it were the King's right hand in the managing of spiritual affairs. It cannot be doubted but that this King that now is, is an Heretic by his true, stiff, inward persuasion; nay by his learning, and by his pretending in particular to great eminency in Ecclesiastical affairs, he hath drunk so deep of heresy, as not content to be fervent therein in his very heart, he hath pleased by the tongues of his own books to profess himself publicly throughout all Europe to be a learned professer thereof, and cunning controvertist therein; but it is true that, upon divers occasions it may clearly appear, that he is not fully satisfied with the present form of Heresy in England: certainly if he were able, he would altar many things both in the essence of Tenants, and in the exterior part of Government: he spends most of his time in discoursing upon these matters of Religion; and delights chief to entertain himself therewith: he speaks, he disputes every day thereof; and feeds himself continually with the divers pr●ises, which are abundantly given him, by those who usually dispute of purpose to be overcome: But he would never be able to altar the present form of heretical practice in England, which hath been so long received and practised by the public Authority and Laws of the Kingdom: the King will then follow the Sect which predominates, and endeavour to propagate it since he cannot altar it. The talk is various concerning the Queen his wife, according to her various proceeding in matter of Religion: before she went from Scotland she gave evident signs of being inclined to be a Catholic; and increased them when she come to England; for it was constantly believed that at her first coming into that Kingdom upon the occasion of a dangerous childbed of hers, she used the Ecclesiastical Sacraments: and her being always willing to read Catholic books, her seeming to reverence relics, her wearing them many times about her; and her treating with more familiarity and confidence with divers Catholic Ladies, who usually did most frequent her Court have always been reasons which have pleaded for this opinion: and as far as her inclination leads her, it seems that undoubtedly she is to be esteemed a Catholic; at lest it may be almost absolutely affirmed, that she sides not with heresy; for she never professed Lutheranism●e after she once quitted her native Country of Denmark, where that Heresy reigns; nor yet Calvinisme either in Scotland or in England; being seldom or never present at the preaching of any of those Heretic Ministers; nor never at the Lord's Supper as it is used by the Calvinists: but on the other side she is so given to festivals and dancing, and to all pleasant pastimes, and is of so easy and voluble a nature, as the opinion of her being a Catholic, can only be grounded upon the uncerertain aforesaid conjectures: she still proceeds with this ambiguity, and the opinion of others touching her conscience in religion is alike dubious. As for the succeeding Prince it is to be feared that he may prove a great Heretic by those signs which of his own instinct he hitherto gives in matter of Religion. To boot that the King hath not been wanting, nor is yet so, in using all possible means of confirming his son in Heresy; nay he oftentimes hath, and still doth serve him as well in place of a Tutor, as of a Father; for he would if it were possible, have his son to succeed him as well in his wisdom and learning, as in his Kingdom. Concerning the Nobility of England, all that is to be said in point of Heresy, is this, That the chiefest of the Nobility, unless it be some very few, who partly openly, partly in secret are Catholics, are generally all of them protestants, and conform themselves to the King's pleasure: of the meaner sort, of nobility, or of the gentry, the most are likewise Protestant's, many of them Puritans, and very few professed Catholics; but of this sort of nobility many of them are in their hearts Catholics, though in outward appearance they seem to be Heretics, that they may save their estates, and be capable of the honours of the Kingdom. The meaner sort of people are likewise part of them Protestant's, part Puritans; and the Citizens are generally all of them infected with Heresy: so as the greatest sort of Catholics of that condition are such as live in Villages, and in the Country: and this may suffice to be said with as much brevity as may be, touching the condition of Heresy in England. I come now to the Catholic Religion: and that you may first clearly understand the Catholics of that Kingdom, we must distinguish them; some in England are declared Catholics; whom they term recusants, because they refuse to go to the Heretic Churches; paying such pecuniary mulcts as are imposed upon those who follow not their Heresy; others there are who live Catholickly in that Kingdom, but in secret, not paying any penalties; making therein use of the favour of great personages, and of their own industry; and others there are who are Catholics by manifest inclination; but who that they may not loose their Estates and Honours, seem outwardly to be Heretics: great likewise is the number of those in England, who are indifferent in point of Religion, and have no particular sense thereof, but are of all beliefs, and follow only a large moral faith; and many of these certainly would choose rather to profess the Catholic Religion, then any whatsoever Heresy; so as to number up the declared Heretics, and who with true fervour and intention do adhere to Heresy in England, 'tis thought (according as it may be conjectured at large) that they will not exceed the fifth part of the Inhabitants of that Kingdom; but on the contrary, if you will consider the two first sorts of Catholics, they will hardly make the thirtieth part of the Kingdom; there being but few who live professed Catholics under the rigour of the penalties; and those not being many who can live Catholickly in secret, under the protection of great men, or by their own industry, so as the greatest number will prove those who under a large and improper signification, would be called Catholics, taking the intention for the deed; and those who make no profession at all of any particular Faith, but who if they were to follow any, would ratherest incline to the Catholic Religion; the first of these two sorts are called in England Schismatics, and the other Politicians. But howsoever, the number of the two first sorts of Catholics must be esteemed great; which may be gathered by the number of secular and regular Priests, who exercise spiritual affairs among them, by so numerous missions: nor is it to be understood that every Catholic Family hath its own particular Priest allotted to it: for this will hardly fall to the share of every thirty houses; the Priests being necessitated to fly from one house to another, to eat the storms of continual persecutions; as also to dispense their spiritual functions now in one Family, now in another, that they may be aiding to as many Catholics as they can. This Argument derived from the number of Priests, and the Ministry which is by them exercised, as hath been touched upon, may make it appear what the number of Catholics are in that Kingdom: great must their zeal and constancy be likewise, to continued as they do in the ancient Faith amid so many dangers and penalties. This fervour and this zeal is particularly seen in women, and most in the most noble; they take the Priests most into their care; they watch most how to keep them out of danger; and they read Catholic books more then do the men; and are more versed in disputing controversies with the Heretics: but 'tis true that women may do all these things more boldly then men, for they escape punishment more easily; yet not long since the King hath much extended his rigour, even to women. The spiritual Government of Catholics in England depends then upon the number of secular, and regular Priests which are within the Kingdom: who keep in divers parts, according to the greater or lesser need of Catholics. The secular Clergy is governed by one head who is over them all by the title of Archpriest; and this Archpriest hath under him some assistants, who from divers sides with proportioned Authority over the other mere Priests, help him to govern. The Votaries or regular, have likewise their superiors, upon whose appointment their particular mission doth depend; which do consist principally in those of the Benedictans, and Jesuits. The Archpriests Authority over the Glergy which is under him, is wholly reduced to exhortation, admonition, and reprehension: using for his last means and punishment to suspend such as are incorrigable, from their spiritual faculties, or utterly to deprive them of them: no more rigorous nor better ordered discipline then this can be admitted of amid so many obstacles as are in all parts met withal at this time in the exercise of the Catholic Faith in England. There are very many learned and zealous men in this secular Clergy, who partly by composing Books, partly by the blood of Martyrdom, do gloriously maintain the Catholic Faith in England; the Clergy-Priests come from forth those Semenaries which to that purpose are instituted out of the Kingdom in other Provinces, there are two of them here in Flanders; one in Faint Homer's, which is governed very accuratly by the Father-Jesuits, wherein are many gallant young youths; and another in Douai, under the Government of a Precedent, and consisting of the chiefest Priests of the Clergy: The Students of the first are all youths, and when they have finished their course in humanity in Saint Omers, they are then sent to the English Seminary in Rome, or else in those other three which are founded in Spain, to wit; in Valiadelid, in Seville, and in Madrid; to employ their study in Philosophy and in Divinity, under the care of the same Jesuits; those of the second (though that of Douai was first founded) are of more mature age, and in their own college read the graver studies of Philosophy, and Divinity. These Seminaries are then as military quarters, where spiritual Soldiers learn their Discipline wherewith to defend the Catholic cause in England; here they are trained and form, and pass from these quarters to make good so hard and dangerous and undertaking, as to fight so potent adversaries, who because they ground themselves upon an unjust and wicked cause, do use the more force and violence; but they use no lesle deceit, and confided no lesle in these deceitful weapons, then in those wherewith they oppugn our cause with open War. These deceits and cus'nages are diversely practised by them; but particularly in their having endeavoured sundry ways to nourish those divisions which of late years have begun to arise, between the secular Priests, and Votaries, and to excite also new ones by the new invented Oath of Allegiance. There is already convenient remedy taken for the former; but the dangerous effects which the Oath hath begotten, do not as yet cease, nor is it to be hoped that they will do soon. The Inventors of this new Engine against the Catholic Religion, propounded two chief ends therein unto themselves: The one that the King might have matter whereon to proceed with yet more rigorous persecution then formerly, against the Estates and persons of Catholics; it being judged that many of them would refuse to take this Oath, wherein he that is to take it, must in Heretical terms deny all Pontifical authority, under whatsoever interpretation or form over the temporal affairs of Princes: The other to 'cause a new occasion of contension between the Catholic Clergy; it being held for certain that there would not be wanting some among the Clergy, who either for fear of punishment, or through luke warmness inReligion, would be induced to take the Oath, and persuade others to do so too; nor have they failed in the former; for many Catholics since then have been punished with imprisonment, and confiscation fo Goods, for their constancy in refusing to take the Oath, and many for this cause do daily incur punishment. And as for the second consideration, they have likewise prevailed so far as to see some Priests, and some Votaries who have admitted of the aforesaid Oath, and who straying still further out of the way, have gone about to maintain, that it is not repugnant to the Catholic Faith. But there are but very few who have yet yielded to the Oath, and those also of the lesle Zealous, and who are least esteemed of for their learning and goodness. All the rest of the Clergy have showed, and still do show themselves much averse unto it, as do generally all Votaries: and many of both sorts, with strength of Learning, and undaunted courage, despising even death itself amid a thousand sufferings; have publicly confuted it, and thereby won singular praise in the Church, and much worship among the Catholics in those parts. Amid these new storms, to boot with the continuance of the former, doth the Catholic cause float at this present in England. The Queen was more greedy of blood; and therefore the sufferings of Priests and Votaries were more frequent in her days. In this King's time, they strive chief to macerate them as much as may be with long imprisonment, and to 'cause the Secular Catholics pine more then ever by depriving them of their Estates, endeavouring thus to work their ends by a flow and incurable disease: some are also proceeded against even to death itself; to the end that to their other calamities; that chiefest, even death, may not be wanting, and these ●ighest sorts of punishments which are used against Priests and Votaries are very horrid; their life being taken away by member and member before death seize upon the whole body: and notwithstanding, amid confiscations, imprisonments, death, and so many other miseries and sore persecutions, the Catholic Faith is still preserved, and doth rather increase then decrease in England. And as fire is most intence when most shut up, so the lively zeal of Catholics in that Kingdom is the more inflamed, and strengthened by how much greater the obstacles have been which it hath met withal in not being able to manifest and enlarge itself. CHAP. IV. Of the State of Religion in Scotland. I Will now briefly dispatch what remains to be represented concerning the State of Religion in Scotland and Ireland. The King of Egland was born a Catholic. Queen Mary, a Princess very zealous in the Catholic Faith, and who showed herself to be so by her constancy in enduring so long imprisonment in England, and even death at last (Queen Elizabeth causing her to be beheaded) was his mother: the King remained an Infant in Scotland; and falling into the Heretics hands, he easily with his milk drunk in the poison of Heresy; and bend his most tender years under the precepts and pleasure of those who had the charge of his childhood; among which in particular one George Bowhannon was his Tutor; a famous Latin Poet and a not lesle famous follower of Calvin: so as the Catholic Reliin a short time, began almost to be quite suppressed in that Kingdom: and Calvin's Sect, on a suden like a Torrent overran all places, all Bishoprics were extinct, and their goods made the Crowns; and the new Heretical Government was reduced to the strictest and exactest form of Calvinism; which hath still continued and doth still continued in Scotland; but the King out of a particular end which he hath of reducing the Kingdoms of England and Scotland into one body; and by this means to make his Authority greater in the Scotch Parliament, thinks now to restore the Bishops of Scotland to their ancient Bishoprics; which when he should have done, he would make the Heresy of those his two Kingdoms more conformable, and by this means so much the more facilitate the designed Union in other things also. And doubtlessly the Kingly power would be greater in Scotland by the readmission of Bishops; for then they would make a particular member in Parliament; and by the entire dependency which they should have upon the King, he might upon all occasions be sure of their Votes; but this is a business which is thought will meet with many difficulties, the Puritan Sect having taken too firm root generally throughout the whole Kingdom of Scotland, and particularly in the Cities, who profess, as hath been said, the rigidest Laws of Calvinism. During the Catholics time, there were two Archbishoprics in Scotland; the one of Saint Andrew, and the other of Glasco; and eleven Bishoprics, eight of which were under the first Archbishopric, and three under the second. As for the Catholic Religion, the condition thereof is deplorable in Scotland; of the chief Lords, there are but some very few that are Catholics; and but few among the Gentry; the greatest number whereof are of those, who are Catholics inwardly, but dare not declare themselves for fear of punishment: all the rest of the Kingdom are Heretics; only the more rustical People are less infected with Heresy; but also more ignorant in whatsoever concerns Religion, that fervour was never found among the Scots in endeavouring that the Catholic Faith might be preserved in Scotland, as hath been seen, and is seen in the English, in her behalf in England; and generally the Scots are not much given to Ecclesiastical profession; but to say truth, they have had but little help of accommodation therein; for except it be some few youths who are maintained in the Scotch Seminary at Rome, and in another of the same Nation here in Douai; no other assistance is given to the Catholics in Scotland for having of Priests, whereof there are very few at this time in that Kingdom. CHAP. V Of the State of Religion in Ireland. BUt look how much the Catholic Vineyard wants workmen in Scotland; so much the more doth Ireland abound in them. The people of that Kingdom are generally Catholics, and almost all of them profess themselves such. Those rigorous Laws against Catholics, which were so many years ago established by Authority of Parliament, have not yet had place there. The Irish are by nature strangely simple and rude, and very stiff in adhering to their ancient customs: they cannot be naturally more devout, then what they appear to be, towards the Holy Sea: nor by their natural instinct more averse to the name of English: So as if they have not been able to eat the violence by which they were also constrained to receive the Sect which reigns in England, yet they have always retained the ancient Religion as far as the calamity of the times would given them leave. That Kingdom is then generally all Catholic; only in Cities, and most in such as are of most Traffic; some of the Inhabitants are infected with Heresy; but yet in a very small number in respect of the Catholics, who in the very same places may oppose themselves to the Heretics. Throughout the Country, all the people are Catholics, though they live in a great deal of ignorance: of the principal Noble men you will hardly found four that are Heretics, and the same may be said of the gentry in those parts. There being so many Catholics in Ireland, and their zeal being so great towards the ancient Faith, it hath been easy for them to preserve a great number of secular Priests and Votaries in their Country, who might cultevate it: The latter of these are almost all of them Franciscans, to whom are added some Jesuists, and some other Votaries of Saint Dominick, and Saint Bernard's Orders. But the Fransciscan Order hath particularly been always held in great esteem in Ireland, and many of this Order go now in many places in their own habits, and keep the use of singing and Chorus, and the form of an ordained Government: Very great likewise is the number of Secular Priests; though to say truth, greater Hability and Learning were to be desired in many of them; sacred Orders having been conferred upon many in Ireland, who were not requisitely qualified. The best are those who have been bred up in Seminaries abroad, which are erected in divers places for this Nation; one in Douai, one in Bordeaux in France, one in Lisbon, in Portugal, and another in Salimanca in Spain. There are four Archbishoprics in Ireland; that of Armagh, of Dublin, of Cassels, and of Toumount; and twenty eight Bishoprics; nine of which depend upon the first Archbishopric; four upon the second; nine upon the third, and six upon the fourth. All these Archbishoprics, and Bishoprics, are in the Heretics hands. Diverse Catholic Priests have notwithstanding the title of the Archbishoprics. But unless it be he of Casels, all the other titulary Archbishops are at this time upon sundry occasions out of Ireland; so as all the secular ecclesiastical government in Ireland, is now in the hands of divers general Vicars, who are partly constituted in their Archbishoprics, by the Archbishops now absent, and some have had the same charge in other Bishoprics conferred upon them directly from the Apostolic See; and the Votaries have likewise their Superiors apart. And this may suffice for what concerns the matters of Religion in these Catholic, and Heretical Provinces of Flanders; and in the Kingdoms of England, Scotland, and Ireland. Here then will I end my present Relation; humbly praying God that he will for ever preserve the ancient Faith in these Catholic Provinces of Flanders, and speedily restore it to the Heretical ones. That he will please to inspire the King of England with such a sense of Religion, as many of his Catholic Predecessors did live and die in. That particularly he may make him therein like to his Mother Queen Mary; who is become more glorious by her crown of Martyrdom, then by that which she wore as Queen; That he and all his Subjects professing thus the true religion, the due worship of God may be fully restored among them, that the former honour may be restored to the Altars; to the Church the ancient devotion; and that reverence to the Pope of Rome; Supreme Head of the Church, which for so many former Ages was rendered to him in those Kingdoms. A Brief Relation of DENMARK sent to ROME, in a Letter by Cardinal Bentivoglio, in time of his Nunciature in FLANDERS, to Cardinal Burghese Nephew, to Pope Paulus Quintus. THE last Month of October, the King of Spain, and these illustrious Archduke's, sent a Dutch Gentleman called Signi●ur di Faen Ambassador from hence in all their names to Denmark, to condole with him for the death of his wife. His Majesty and their Highnesses willingly embraced this occasion to renew their friendship with that King, and to knit the knot of Amity the closer between them for the future. The Ambassador was entertained by the King with extraordinary honour. He gave him the precedency in all places, and upon all other occasions evidence how great a value he put upon this favour conferred upon him by so great a King, and by these Princes so near allied to him in blood. The Ambassador returned to Brussels; and I desired him that he would make me a distinct Narration of that King's particular person, of his court, Dominions, of their Government, of the Heresy that rules there, and of his correspondency with other Princes. And having made a breviate thereof, I thought it a thing which might not prove disadvantageous to the interests of the Apostolic See; nor unpleasing to our Lord the Pope, nor to yourself, if I should acquaint you with what then come to my knowledge. They may rather prove so much the more curious and considerable, by how much they are the less known or valued in these parts by reason of the far remoteness of the Countries. The King of Denmark is a Prince of a gallant aspect, of a well proportioned stature, of a very strong complexion, and greatly given to bodily exercise. He is now thirty five years old; and by his wife who was sister to the now Elector of Brandenburg, hath three sons living, and some daughters that are dead. He hath but one brother, and three sisters, who are all married. One to the King of England, another to the Duke of Brunswick, and another now a Widow, who was wife to the late Elector of Saxony. As for his gifts of Mind; they are many, and very remarkable. He is a Prince of a great wit, quick and ready at action: So as you would hardly believe he were born under so cold and sluggish a climate as is that of his Territories; for the most part horridly frozen; he is esteemed to be a warrior; and in the present war between him and the King of Swethland, he hath always showed a generous mind, and great abilities to command in war. He is well read in humanity; he is a great Master of the Latin Tongue, and delights much to speak it; and useth very often to writ in that Language to his Brother in Law the King of England. He speaks Dutch and French well; and seems to understand Spanish and Italian; he breeds up the Prince his son likewise in the knowledge of Languages, who is now about nine years of age, and made him upon occasion of this Embassy, writ a Letter in Latin to the young Prince of Spain, with offers of much friendship, and in terms of great observance and respect. And thus much for the kings own person, and those of his Family. The Court of Denmark, hardly deserves the name of a Kings Court. The state and gallantry of other Courts of Europe, hath not as yet gotten into those remote parts, where their manners are between clownish and simple; for building, householdstuff, number of attendants, and court splendour, the King of Denmark, is rather to be numbered among the petty Princes, then great Kings; and he himself is of a very familiar nature, far from the ostentation of greatness. He often times goes from one place to another, waited on by only one or two servants; and behaves himself with great familiarity in private Gentleman's houses; laying aside not only the person of a King, but even of a great man Wherein he himself says he hath some particular design; as to show his confidence in his Nobility, and to reign with love, and not by Force in the hearts of his people. The King of Denmark hath very large Dominions, their vast circuit being considered; but of no great consideration, the greatest part of them being almost everlastingly frozen towards the Pool, and nothing but Woods and huge Mountains in Noraway. Besides his two Kingdoms of Denmark and Noraway, he is Master of other Countries, and Islands of large circuit, which are seated so far Northernly, as in some parts they have almost half a years day, and afterwards as much night. The best, most inhabited, and fertilest parts of his Territories, is in his Kingdom of Denmark▪ and all that which lies nearest Germany. His Dominions abound not much in Traffic; but the Incomes are great which he receives from those who must necessarily pass through the Straight of Copenhaghen, which is called the Sound. Copenhaghen is the City wherein usually he resides. Here must all such Ships stay which Traffic in the Baltic Sea; and the Cities that lie thereon: every Vessel that passeth by there, pays a double risen noble English, besides some other tax which they pay for their Merchandise, which are transported from place to place. He raiseth a great sum of moneys by this Passage, which is the greatest part of his Revenue. He likewise receives much pro●it by the Transportation of Cattles out of his Countries, wherein they abound very much, and produce very large ones. Great quantity of Timber for the building of Ships, and particularly for Masts and Sail-yards, is likewise extracted out of his Woods of Noraway, whereof he makes advantage; with all this his whole Revenue is not thought to exceed one Million of Gold. The Government of the King of Denmark's States, though it be composed of a Monarchical Form, depend chiefliest upon the Optemati; The Nobility bearing a great sway in those parts; the King can resolve nothing of importance without them; the administration of justice depends chief upon them; and the King must proceed with them rather by entreaty, then command. In ●ine, the King is rather Head then King; and the Nobles are rather Freemen then Subjects. The common people have no share in Government; as for his Forces, they chief consist by Sea, he not having any considerable Land Militia; and in his present war against the Swedes, the greatest part of his Army are Foreigners; as Dutch, English, and Scots. The Danes are ablest at Sea, that Kingdom having Islands on many parts of it; and consequently the Inhabitants having great occasion to accustom themselves to Maretin affaairs. The king entertains ordinarily between 50 and 60 great ships, all of them abundantly provided for whatsoever belongs to Maretin Affairs, and he himself much delights in the study of Navigation. The Heresy professed by the King of Denmark is Lutheranism. His Country fell into the contagion of this malady, when Germany was first infected therewithal: and though this Heresy of Luther's begot so many other Sects, and so various afterwards; and that that of Calvin in particular be so much diffused; yet never would the Kings of Denmark change the first Sect which they embraced; in which resolution the present King hath showed himself more steadfast, then the rest; The King of England hath often laboured to persuade him to Calvinism; and though not in that rigid form as is taught at Geneva, and as is practised in France and in other parts, but clad in those exterior Rites, and accompanied with that form of Government, as it is now practised in England; yet all his endeavours have still proved vain; for the King of Denmark would never be brought to altar his first Heresy; but rather when he hath sometimes suspected that some of his subjects have inclined to Calvinism, he hath deprived them of all manner of Government, and hath been very severe in keeping that Heresy from being introduced into his Dominions. The greatest friendship and correspondency which the King of Denmark holds with Foreign Princes, is with the King of England, a reciprocal communication of all weightiest Affairs passing between them. But by how much the King of England is greater and more powerful then the King of Denmark, so much the greater respect doth the latter show to the former. The King of Denmark went himself in person some years ago to visist the King of England; and before and since hath held the same observance towards him; and hath kept a special good Intelligence with the Queen his Sister. He kept always good correspondency with the late Duke of Saxony, who was likewise his Brother in Law; and doth the like now with the Duke of Brunswick. There is not so good an understanding now as hath been formerly between him and the United Provinces of Flanders; those Provinces behaving themselves, as he says since the Truce, and since they took upon them the pretended title of United Provinces, with too much pride and arrogancy; to boot that they seemed to favour the King of Sweden more th●n him in the abovesaid war. He likewise complains much that the United Provinces since the Truce, have begun to question the Imposition laid upon the passing the Zound, pretending that their Ships aught either not to pay at all, or at lest be in some part eased therein. He seems to be a friend to the King of Poland, especially now that both their Interests are conformable in the war which both of them made upon Duke Charles, who was Uncle to the King of Polonia, Usurper to his first kingdom of Swethland. He likewise holds good correspondency with the Emperor; endeavouring to keep fair with the Empire, upon which, part of his Dominions descends towards the confines of Germany. His kindness is not such with the Elector of Brandenburg, whose sister he married, as so ●ear a relation of alliance would require; the house of Brandenburg o●ing very near joined to the United Provinces, and the Elector having seemed to adhere more to the said Provinces, then to him in the mentioned distastes. He hath no particular interest of Friendship nor enmity with these Archduke's, with the king of Spain, nor the king of France; yet the Forces of his Country assisted France against the crown of Spain, in the past revolutions between those two Crowns. And hence it is peradventure, that the Catholic king, and these Archduke's, endeavour now to gain this present king, that they may sever him from the United Provinces upon any new occasions of troubles that may arise here in Flanders. Dated from Brussels the second of Feb. 1613. A Short RELATION of the Hugonots in FRANCE, sent to ROME from the Cardinal Bentevoglio, in the time of his being Nuncio with Lewis the thirteenth King of FRANCE, to Cardinal Burghesse, Nephew to Pope Paul the fifth, the seventh of November 1619. upon occasion of a general Assembly made then by the Hugonots at Louden in FRANCE. THE Heresy of our times began in France, in the time of Francis the first; it increased, but as it were in secret under Henry the second; broke forth in public, and got strength in the tender years of Francis the second; and then increased mightily, and overrun the whole Kingdom in the Infancy of Charles the 9 the. It did neither increase nor decrease much in the Reign of Henry the third. The Catholic Religion was rather endamaged then advantaged upon occasion of Catholic League. And finally, Henry the fourth, after having come to the Crown by force of Arms; weary of war, and desirous to secure himself the better by the way of peace, did really establish the liberty of conscience, and gave way to other great advantages in favour of the Hugonots of that kingdom; whereinto Heresy did first chief enter through Faction, and hath since been maintained by Faction. Nor is it to be doubted but that under pretence of liberty of conscience the Hugonots have introduced a separation from the State. This separation appears in two sorts: the one in what respects matter of Religion, and the other in what directly concerns the State. In the first the Hugonots have already form an entire government apart: to the toleration whereof, through the calamity of times 'twas requisite that divers kingly edicts should concur. In the second it appears that their end is the same; which is to establish likewise a popular politic government apart, which may be as contrary to the temporal Monarchy of kings, as the other is to the spiritual Monarchy of the Church. Both these governments consist in the gathering together of multitudes: and to speak first of that of their Churches, they have their meetings of every particular Church apart; and of more Churches together, then of those of an entire Province; and lastly, of as many as are in the whole kingdom. The first are termed Consistories, the second Colloquys, the third Provincial, and the last National Synods. The Consistories are composed of Ministers, Elders, and Deacons. They are more or less in number, according as the Churches are greater or less. The Ministers duty is to preach, and the chief Functions of every Church are officiated by them. The Elders do superintend in many things which respect Discipline; and the Deacons distribute the Alms.s The Consistories sit every week once, or oftener upon occasions; most voices carry it in the resolving of any affairs; which are either such as respect the profession of faith, or Ecclesiastical government; in those which concern the profession of faith, nothing can be resolved of without the consent of the National Synod; but in what concerns Discipline, when the Consistory cannot resolve of itself, it adviseth with the neighbouring Churches by way of Colloquys, and Provincial Synods; wherhfore the Colloquys meet every three months, or at lest twice a year; and the Provincial Synods every year once or twice. The Colloquys are composed of four, six, or more Churches; and Provincial Synods are likewise proportionably form of divers Colloquys. Thus then are Affairs managed; from Consistories to Colloquys; from Colloquys to Provincial Synods, and finally, from Provincial to National Synods; which meet usually once every two years: one Minister, and one Elder go usually from Consistories to Colloquys; and the like number of the Churches of each Colloquy, to Provincial Synods: but from a whole Provincial Synod but two or three Ministers, and as many Elders are sent to the National Synod: to the end that the number be not too great of those that must intervene therein. In every Colloquy a Minister doth preside or sits in the Chair, whose part it is to propound the business; and it is so ordered as that some times one church, sometimes another doth precede; which is not done only in Colloquys, but also in Provincial and National Synods; that equality may be observed; which is the point chief driven at in all Affairs. In Consistories, voices are counted according to the People, but in Colloquys, and Provincial and National Synods, the voices are counted according to the number of churches, and not according to the persons; for whither they be more or less that represent one church, they all make but one voice of that church in National Synods, the convocation depends sometimes upon one, sometimes upon another Province. And they are called sometimes in one, sometimes in another Province; according to the conjuncture of times, and the occasion of affairs. In dividing the Provinces of the kingdom, the Hugonots have not observed the usual order of dividing them; but have made many of one; and one of many; according as the kingdom is more or less corrupted with Heresy in the several parts thereof. The most infected Provinces lie beyond the River of Loire, which divides France as it were through the middle; and of those more particularly, Poictou, Saint Onge, Guien, Languedock, and Dolfeny; at this time then France is divided by the Hugonots, into sixteen Provinces; and according to this number are Deputies sent to the National Synods, which consist only of Ministers; and to the General Politic Assemblies, which consist of three sorts of persons, as shall be more particularly showed elsewhere. The Provinces which are divided by them in Form aforesaid are these; The Isle of France, Burgony, Normandy, Britanny, Anjou, Berry, Poictou, Saint Onge, Rochel, the lower Guyen, the upper Languedock, with the upper Guyen, the lower Languedock, the Sevene, and the Vivarese, (which are likewise two parts, in Languedock) Dolpheny, and Province. In which division you see that four Provinces are made out of Languedock, out of Guien one and an half; and Rochel which is but one only city, goes for a whole Province. Yet this is only observed in the General Politic Assemblies; for in the National Synods Rochel is numbered only for one single church. The country of Bearn is likewise joined in Union with the aforesaid Provinces, but with certain particular advantages; the King's Edicts in favour of the Catholic Religion, and the restitution of Ecclesiastical goods, not having yet been admitted of there. All the Hugonots churches in the aforesaid Provinces may amount to about seven hundred; and accounting one church with another, you may allow two Ministers to every church. Calvin's Doctrine is professed in all of them; and to eat the multiplicity and confusion of sects, Calvinism is the only Sect which is permitted in France. And as for the number of Hugonots, estimation is made that of fifteen Million of Inhabitants which are in France, there is one Million and better of Hugonots. And thus much for what belongs to the Government of Hugonots in matter of Religion. As for the other point of the separation of Government in things which respect the State; 'tis clearly seen that the Hugonots conspire to make a popular Commonwealth Government, which may be directly opposite to Monarchy. At first they had certain places of safety granted them to free them from suspicion of having any violence used towards them in matter of Religion. They were likewise suffered to Summon once in three year a General Political Assembly to name some Deputies, two of which were to reside constantly at the Court, to manage the affairs of their whole Body; and to endeavour the execution of the Regal edicts, according to the tenure thereof. But abusing still more and more their sovereigns clemency and goodness, they have so altered the face of affairs, as their first palliated pretences of liberty of conscience, is now seen to be by them turned into designs of absolute liberty of Government; and all matters of Religion, into apparent practices of Faction. This hath been more evidently seen since the death of Henry the fourth; Father to the now King. For in this King's minority, the Hugonots making use of so favourable a conjuncture, have of themselves introduced Cerutes into France, according to the custom of the German Liberty. They have made their Counsels in every Province, permanent and settled, according to the use of the United Provinces of Flandsrs. And finally, they have begun to call by their own authority, and oftener then at first, their general Political Assemblies. In all which things it is evidently seen that their end is to form a particular assembly of Deputies of their whole Body, which may likewise be firm & stable, and which may continually represent the same body in Union and Sovereignty, which would be a mere instituting of a Supreme Council like to that of the States General of the United Provinces of Flanders; by which Council the Sovereignty of their Union is still represented and kept alive. The Hugonots Political Government consists then in the assembling of multitudes together, as doth the government of their Churches in manner aforesaid. In every Province they have a Council composed of three sorts of persons: Gentlemen, Ministers, and people of a third condition; and this Council is changed every three years: In this Council their politic Affairs as they hap from time to time, are handled; and in this Assembly the Gentry precedes the Ministers; as on the contrary, Ministers precede the Gentry in Ecclesiastical Assemblies; when it may so fall out that any of the Nobility may Intervene there out of some requisite occasion. But if the business be of great Importance, so as it can receive no resolution from any one Province, the Province interessed hath recourse unto the Circuit, and assembles the neighbouring Provinces which belong to that Circuit; and if the Importance be such as that circuit cannot resolve it, they call another Circuit into their aid, and so another till they come to the general Convocation of the whole Assembly, when the business is of such consequence as that it is to be handled and resolved on by the Interposition and Authority of the whole body of the Huguenots. There are but three Circuits; every of which comprehends under it a certain number of Provinces; and the Hugonots have introduced these Circuits, that they may the sooner assemble now one part, now another of the Provinces according to their need, and yet so much the sooner if the General Assembly be requisite. As was particularly seen this year in the business of Bearn; upon occasion whereof the Huguenots went first from Circuit to Circuit, and afterwards assembled together twice in a General Assembly; first, at Ortss, in the same Country of Bearn, and the second time at Rochel. In the calling together, and keeping of their Political Assemblies, they observe the same order as they do in their Ecclesiastical meetings, as well in constituting a Precedent, as in the plurality of voices, and in keeping an exact equality; so as no one Province can have any Prerogative over another. When the time of the General Assembly is come, whither it be called by the king's permission, or by the Hugonots themselves; in the Counsels of each Province the particular Affairs of that Province are first discussed. Than each of them sand their Deputies (of the three above said Orders) to the General Assembly; where with common Authority of the whole body, such resolves are made as are requisite, as well in respect of every Province, as of their whole Body. But in the former Assemblies, wherein due form was observed, the Hugonots did only, as they were permitted, choose their Deputies for three years, till the time of the new General Assembly. To this purpose they chose six persons, out of which the king chose two: and this Deputation being made, and their Demands in a few days agreed upon which they were to make unto the king, they quickly were dispatched, and ended the Assembly. Now of late they seem to pretend to name only two deputies, at lest not to consent to any save two such as they like best, to the end that the King may be as it were excluded from having any share in their deputations: they will have no time prefixed them to make their demands, neither will they departed, or end their Assembly, till they have answer, and be satisfied in their demands: and hence it is, that the Hugonots not thinking themselves secure by reason of these their contumatious proceed, in the place where the Assembly had want to meet, (for the place was likewise to be chosen by the King) they have of themselves and their own free will removed it to some other place, where they thought they might be with more safety, and finally when they could do not more, they have brought it to Rochel, which is their new imagined Cartharge of France; where they hope or rather dream to found with a formidable power both by land and sea, their already designed future Commonwealth; but which is now indeed their chief Sanctuary, where they plot a thousand mischiefs every day against the King and Church, and lest fear to be punished. The General Political Assemblies are permitted by the King to the Hugonots, from three years to three, when they are had as they aught to be and to the aforesaid ends: it seems now consequently that they are tacitly permitted to assemble themselves first together in every Province, that each of them may sand their Deputies to the General Assembly: all the rest exceeds the King's permission, nay contrary to the Orders and express Authority of the King. They have a great many Towns in divers parts of the Kingdom, which from time to time upon certain limitatious, the King hath given into their possession, to seucure them the more from any violence that may be offered them in matter of Religion, which are therefore called places of safety; to these others have since been added, which are called matremoniall Towns, as married after a manner to the former, and depending upon their Garrisons; no Garrisons being assigned to these martimoniall Towns. On this side the Loire the Hugonots have but very few Towns; but on the other side they have great store, with greater or lesser Garrisons, according to the quality of the Towns, and persons who command therein; they receive moneys from the King to pay the said Garrisons, which may amount to 60000 pound sterling a year: though all these Towns of security in time of peace, have either no Garrisons at all, or but very weak ones; the Governors thereof turning then their pay into their particular purses: they likewise receive 20000 pound sterling a year by name of an aid, to maintain their Ministers; but but little of this falls to the Ministers share, it being usually laid out in other expenses, which regard the Hugonots politic ends; they themselves bearing the greatest burden in maintaining of their Ministers, by public contributions, of what may suffice to that purpose: and to boot with these common sums given to the whole body of the Hugonots, the Kings gives about 30000 pound in several pensions among them. The King hath the naming of all the Governors of all their places of security; but they must be Hugonots: Rochel is not notwithstanding any of their Towns of security, nor is there any Governor placed there by the King: Rochel hath a particular Government by itself, after the manner almost of a Free Commonwealth; so as it hardly acknowledgeth any Regal authority: and that it may acknowledge it lesle, and so grow to greater liberty, it joined at first, and still continues to do so more and more with the Huguenot Faction. But though Rochel be noon of their Towns of security, yet is it one of the Hugonots chiest strengths; so strong is the situation of it both by Sea and land; so strong both by Art and Nature, and so abundantly furnished with all things needful to make a powerful and long defence. By the way of Rochel they keep continual correspondency with England; by the way of Sedan, a strong Town belonging to the Duke of ●ullion; they keep the like with Germany, and the United Provinces of Flanders; and they will now keep better correspondency with the Prince of Orange, he having of late succeeded his brother in that Principality, who was a Catholic; but their closest intelligence is in Geneva; by means of which City they likewise hold intelligence with the Heretic Cantons of the Swissers; and more particularly with that of Bearn, which is the strongest, and lies nearest to Geneva. For what remains, their Towns of security are more for noise then strength, being all of them almost but of small consideration; so as few of them in time of War would be able to maintain a siege: In time of trouble they raise their best soldiers from the mountainous parts of Sevene in Languedock; and gather moneys now by way of contribution among themselves, by reprisals of the King's Revenues, and by all other means which use to make way to the disorders and confusion of Civil War. Their peremptoriness and perpetual plot makes them strong: But above all things they make advantage of the discords and commotions which often arise among the Catholics in France, never losing any opportunity which makes against the Crown, either of receiving the turbulent Catholics into their Faction, or in joining with them. The chiefest among the Hugonots at this time are the Dukes of Bullion, Roan, Tremoullie, and Seugh; the Marshal Diguieres, Monsieur de Schatillion, and Monsieur de la Force; Roan is Governor of Poictou; Diguieres the King's Lieutenant in Dolpheny, but with such Authority as he may rather be called Prince of that Province, then the King's Lieutenant; La Force is Governor of the Country of Bearn; and the rest though they have no particular Government of Provinces, are yet highly esteemed of out of many other considerations. Bullion and Diguiers, for their age, experience and valour, are men highly valued; yet Bullion is held to be false, and one not to be trusted in; whereas Diguieres hath always had the repute of generous and faithful. There are continually jealousies between these great ones; and ambition bears them often to designs wherewith the rest are not well pleased; so as the rest of the Hugonots do not confided much in them: but these jealousies are particularly fomented by the Ministers, as well in the great ones against the people, as in the people against the great on●s, to make their own Ministerial Faction the greater. And this may serve for the second point. It may then be granted by what hath been said, that Heresy hath introduced in France a separation of State; and that the Huguenot Faction aspires directly to the Government of a Commonwealth, and designs to compass it by the rvine of the Church and Monarchy; but God at last confounds the wicked, and his right hand always fights and overcomes in the behalf of the righteous: so as it is not to be doubted but that the Church and Monarchy will be preserved, and the Huguenot Faction consequently extinguished: nay it is to be hoped, that the present King by Divine Providence is preserved (according as his father hath foretold to many) to this triumph. Diguieres is decrepit; Bullion old and infirm; the other great ones are always at odds between themselves: that mad fervour of conscience so radicated at first in the Hugonots, grows every day lesle and lesle in them; and unless it be among the meaner sort of people, who are most deceived, the sense of Religion appears already to be wholly turned to Faction in almost all the rest; which Faction may be said to be divided into three parts, rather then to but one: the Nobility makes one, the People another, and the Ministers a third; and who shall well consider them, will found that the Hugonots strength never had; nor never is like to have any strong foundation within themselves: out of which reasons it may be judged that these Hydra's heads of Impiety, and Rebellion, will at last be cut of; and that this present King to the great honour of his name, and to the Immortal glory of God, is he who is to be the queller of this Monster. On the contrary, the King is in the prime flower of his age; and is already known to be a great lover of Piety and Justice; yea that beyond the expectation of his age, his chief aim is to succeed his predecessor Saint Lewis, as well in worth as in name. The Princes of the blood and all the other Princes are now Catholics; as are also almost all the other chiefest Lords: the Parliaments are Catholic; the Cities and chiefest Towns Catholic; and the Ecclesiastical Order grows every day better in manners, learning and discipline: and lastly it is to believed that France after so many ages of an United Government, will never consent to the authority of any other then that of the ancient Catholic Church, and to that of her ancient and Sovereign Monarchy. A RELATION of the TREATY of the TRUCE in FLANDERS, which was concluded in Antwerp, the ninth of April 1609. Written by Cardinal Bentivoglio in the time of his being Nuntio with their Highnesses, the Archduke's, ALBERTUS and ISABELLA Infanta of Spain. The first Book of the Truce of Flanders. THE Treaty of the Truce of Flanders made of late between Philip the third King of Spain; together with the Archduke's, Albertus and Isabel, and the States General of the United Provinces of these Countries, may doubtlessly be numbered among the most memorable, affairs of our time. If we consider the time therein employed, it was above two years; if the Princes who intervened therein, all the chiefest of Europe had therein their share; if the difficulties which were to be overcome, there were never any greater met withal in any negotiation: and lastly, if we will consider the effects which ensued thereupon, nothing could be of more importance to the public affairs of Christendom, then the 12 years' cessation of those arms, which had so long troubled almost whole Europe with the bitter Wars of Flanders: It was my fortune to be present at so important an affair, at the beginning of my Nuntioship, the endeavours therein were already begun when I come to Brussels; and some notice was likewise taken thereof at Rome before I parted from that Court; wherhfore I received strict Orders from the Pope both by word of mouth, and instructions, that I should watch very narrowly over whatsoever should ensue upon so weighty occurrences, and particularly over such occasions as might arise upon such a conjuncture, of any ways bettering the state of the Catholic Religion in the United Provinces. Thus my Prince's commands, the Duty of my employment, and the very business itself which had drawn upon it the eyes of all Europe, made me the more diligent in observing what had already been done therein. I come to Flanders, (as I have said) at their commencing, when the overture had been made by a suspension of Arms for some months: and endeavouring to be as well informed as I could; I took short notes of what discourses past therein between myself, and Ambassadors of foreign Princes, and the other chief Officers of the Court of Flanders; I found that (taking the narrative a little higher) that the beginning and progress thereof till my arrival was thus. Marquis Spinola having the Command of the Catholic Army given him, after the taking of Ostend; the Spaniards laboured very much to get into the heart of the Enemy's Country. Their designs were to get some safe pass over the Rhine; and when they should have got footing on the other side, to endeavour afterwards to pass over the Isel, and to carry the War into the very heart of Holland. To this end Spinola after having raised the Forts over the Rhine at Rurort, and possessed himself of that passage in the former of the two fields before the Truce; had then advanced farther towards the Province of Friesland, and taken Linghen a strong hold, and Oldensell, a town neare Linghen; and in the last field had divided his Army into two parts; had again encamped himself with one of them beyond the Rhein, using all his might to pass the Isel, and betake himself to the taking in of some important place; and that the Count Buquoy had endeavoured with the other part to pass over the Vahall, and to take Niminghen, a town which commanded that river a great way; but the climate of Flanders being naturally moist and rainy, the summer that year did so abound in continual showrs, as by reason of the overflowing of the Rivers, it was impossible either for Spinola to pass over the Isel, or Buquoy the Vahall, and the enemy had so fortified the banks on their side, together with all those Frontiers, as though the heavens had not fought for them, their own forces, and fortifications would have much impeled the ends which the Spaniards had propounded unto themselves; Spinola despairing to compass his forenamed designs; after having taken Groll, a very considerable place; and having made Buquoy join with him had besieged and taken Renberg; and thus by means of this place, which is of great importance, had made himself master of another passage over the Rhein, much better then that which he had first got. These were the Spaniards conditions and designs; and these were Spinolas undertakings in the two last fields wherein he governed; and doubtless the events thereof would have been of great moment, though very far short of the conceived hopes: for respect being had to the so great preparations, the enemies fear would have been greater then the blow itself would have been unto them: and in Spain it was thought impossible to continued such an excessive provision of moneys as was that which was disbursed, which was 300000 crowns a month; though double that expense was not since able to hinder the Army from mutinying when the siege of Renberg was hardly ended, a thing whereat Spinola was much afflicted; and which made him the more take those things into consideration, which some of the gravest and best experienced Councillors or officers had already often times done both in Spain & Flanders, touching the difficulties and dangers which the war of Flanders carried with it; and the undertaking to subdue the enemy by force of Arms. They discoursed thus among themselves. That all the good they had reaped by 40 years' war was, their having made the enemy the more strong; more resolute to defend their usurped liberty; more firm in the union which they had established among themselves; and better united to the foreign Princes who sided with them: That Nature's self might be said to have fought always for them, by their bulwarks of sea and rivers, and their strong situations in all others parts; and that where nature was wanting, there industry together with their so many well munited places did make amendss: that their power by land was very great in all things else; and their power at sea so great, as that the crown of Spain had been much endamaged thereby, even in the East Indies, and was in danger of being yet a greater sufferer by them in the West Indies also: what a mass of strength (on the other side) and money must it cost the K. to maintain the war of Flanders; that doubtlessly his Empire was very large, but much disunited; Flanders, the most disunited member of the whole body of his dominions both by sea and land; that the sea was blocked up by the enemies ships; that their passage by land did depend upon many Princes, w changed always caused great difficulties in their sending of aid, and destroyed their men more by their marches then by their bick'rings: then, how many corruptions & disorders had been rooted in their army? and how could they be remedied during the war, they being the effects which so long a war had inevitably produced? that instead of obedience, strife reigned among the nations; that there were now more wives then soldiers, more mutinies then years; that their own forces were almost as dangerous to them as those of their enemies: and mutinies gowing so familiar, now of one, now of another nation, & often times of many nations at once, what a sad day would that be, when the whole army should mutiny together? a day which would bring the K. affairs in Flanders to their utmost danger, as also the cause of the catholic religion; for the defence whereof the war at first was chief made, and hath been so long maintained by the Spanish side. If then by so many reasons and so long experience, war against the enemy were to be esteemed so fruitless, is it not better (said they) to come to some fair agreement with them? is it not better to order our Army anew, and in the mean time to get strength, and laying down arms, except what with time would make most to the Spanish advantage? Arms being laid down, the King of France already grown old, might in this interim die, and with him that assistance might chance to cease, which was subministred to the enemy by a Prince of such power and repute: that after his death the affairs of France might peradventure change face, their King being so young: the like might be expected in the affairs of England, their King being a new King, and a Scotch man; but ill looked on by that Kingdom; the enemy having likewise received considerable succours from Scotland: and in case any of these things should hap, how much would the affairs of Spain be bettered? but above all it was to be hoped that even peace itself might turn to a secret war against the enemy: that the fear of the Spanish Forces was the bond which fastened their Union closest; so as this fear ceasing through the enjoyment of quiet, some domestic evil might arise among them, which might break the Union; and some opportunity in favour of the King and Arch-duke's, of regaining some of the rebellious Provinces by underhand dealing, and of subjugating the others afterwards by force. These reasons were doubtlessly very weighty, and of great consideration, and had been often times argued in Spain; whereupon the King had at last resolved that if he could not effect his ends by arms, all possible means should be used to come by some convenient Treaty of agreement with the enemy in Flanders: and the affairs of Flanders may be said to depend totally upon the King: For the marriage between the Archduke and the King's sister, proving barren, and the Provinces of Flanders being consequently to return unto the King again, he had therefore chief maintained the war with his Forces, and consequently all Treaties of agreement were chief to depend upon his authority. The Archduke inclined likewise very much to bring things to some accommodation; he being a Prince naturally given to love his quiet, and full of years and experience, might comprehend better then any other the dangerous consequences which the war of Flanders brought with it: but it was very hard to found out a way how to treat of accommodation. A while since the enemy seemed to be quite averse unto any such treaty; and still swelling with prosperity & success, they resolved never to listen to any whatsoever treaty, till such time as the K. and Archdukes should first publicly declare that they treated with them as with free Provinces and States, unto the which the K. nor Archdukes made no claim or pretence whatsoever: wherein the Archduke found great repugnancy in himself, and foresaw the like in the King. He thought that to declare those now to be a free people, against whom they had fought as against rebels, would be to confess that their former war had been unjust; and that to seem so willing now to put an end unto it, would be likewise a declaring that they were not longer able to maintain it; what honour should they loose herein? how could they with credit treat of peace or truce with their own rebels; and how dangerous a precedent would it be, to make liberty the reward of rebellion? for such an example in favour of those Provinces which had rebelled, would be an invitation to such as kept yet their obedience, to do the like. This preparation of the affairs of Flanders was in the beginning of the year 1607. Father john Neyen a Franciscan Friar, was then at Brussels; he was born at Antwerp, and after having taken upon him that religious he had stayed a while in Spain, to pass the course of his studies there, and by that reason was well acquainted with the affairs of that Court. He returned from thence to Flanders, and being become Commissary General of his Order in those parts, he kept very much at Brussels: He was very religious, of an eloquent tongue, very well fitted to the nature of his Country, and therefore as well acceptable in private discourse as in the Pulpit; and much versed in the negotiations of the age. The Commissary had some acquaintance in Holland; and by chance a Holland Merchant who was a friend of his was then in Brussels: This Merchant was very inward with divers of the chiefest that sat at the Helm in the United Provinces: The Archduke being at private Council with Spinola and some others of the King's Officers in Flanders, 'twas thought expedient that the Commissary should dispose the Merchant to go to the Hague in Holland to endeavour some new Overture of Treaty. The Merchant went▪ but he found no ear would be given thereunto, till the abovesaid Declaration of their being free States were granted, and that this should precede all other things. The Archduke was sensible of the aforesaid repugnancies in condescending thereunto; yet all the former considerations being again weighed, it was at last judged, that it was best to yield to the present necessity, and that all means should be used to procure a cessation of Arms, and to enter into a Treaty of accommodation. If the Treaty should have good success, the success would sufficiently applaud the Treaty; if it should not succeed well, but that they must be forced to continued the war; the making of such a verbal Declaration would not import much: 'Twas added, that to declare that they treated with the United Provinces, as with free States unto which the King and Arch-duke's laid no pretention, was always to be understood by way of supposition, to with; as if they were free, not signifying a true and legitimate liberty; which they by their rebellion could never justly come by, nor justly enjoy: which being so manifest, neither did the King nor the Archduke's loose any right which they formerly had to the United Provinces, though they should make a Declaration thus limited. Sudden advertisement was sent to Spain of what had been discovered by the Merchants means; and all things were again represented unto the King, which were thought likeliest to induce him to given way, that some treaty of agreement might be had with the United Provinces, in such manner as hath been said. The reasons which prevailed in Flanders, did so likewise in Spain, in persuading the King to given way to the Treaty which was desired. Whereupon the Archduke resolved to sand the Commissary General in person, into Holland, to endeavour once more some fairer way of commencing a Treaty, and to yield at last, if there were no remedy, to what the United Provinces pretended unto. The Commissary took his journey about the end of February; and being come to the Hague, he soon perceived there was no hopes of ever being heard in any thing whatsoever, unless the abovesaid Declaration should precede: whereupon being admitted into the Council of the States General, which is the supreme magistracy by which the whole body of those Provinces is represented: he opened himself thus unto them. That the Archduke Albertus, and the Arch-Dutches the Infanta his wife, had always desired to see the Lowcountries once free from Civil wars; that so many and so bitter calamities of war, might be turned to the enjoyment of a happy Peace. That Peace was the end of War; which not being to be had but by the way of Treaty; they did consent on their side that the Declaration of Liberty which they knew the United Provinces do pretend unto should precede; that it become all good Princes to endeavour all means whereby to 'cause quiet unto their people, and that to justify this their so just and religious end to the world, they had willingly descended now to an overture of treaty; and to second the success thereof would be as willing to do any thing that might tend to the good of the weal-public .This Proposition being well discussed in the Council of the States General, they thought that whatsoever could be desired, made then for the advantage of the Low-countrieses; whereupon they resolved to accept of the offer: and before the Commissary departed, a suspension of Arms for eight months was agreed upon, which was to begin the next May; and it was likewise concluded that the Treaty should begin the next September. The Commissary went from Holland with this answer. Not long after the Archduke's declared by a particular Edict or Proclamation, that they come to suspension of Arms with the United Provinces, as with Free Provinces and States, unto which they did not lay any pretence; the States General did also the like on their side: the Commissary did likewise promise' that the King of Spain should by the Archduke's procurement ratify the same within three months: and he did likewise desire in the names of the Archduke's, that the States would inhibit all hostility by sea, promising that the Archduke's would oblige themselves that the King of Spain should do the same: to the which the States after some difficulties condescended: all this was afterwards published by the United Provinces to their people with great demonstrations of joy; and they gave an account thereof to their confederate Princes; but more particularly to the King of France and King of England; from both of which, Ambassadors were forthwith sent to congratulate with them. The affairs of Flanders were at this pass when I come to Brussels, which was on Saint Laurence his eve, 1607. it cannot be expressed how all men on all sides did rejoice, in expectation of what the event would prove. Soon after my coming to Brussels the King's ratification come; to procure the which, as also to given a more particular account of what had past, the Archduke had dispatched away Commissary Neyen: The ratification come in general terms; and so penned, as it was to be doubted the United Provinces would not allow of it: yet Lewis Verreychen, chief Secretary of State to the Archduke's was suddenly sent with it into Holland. The United Provinces showed strange arrogancy in these Negotiations; and particularly a great suspicion of being overreached by the Spaniards; whence it was to be believed that they would interpret all that should come from that side in the worst sense. You have heard what the number and Government of the United Provinces are, and how they are seated. How Holland and Zealand are seated in the bosom of the sea, and the other five lie more inwards into the land; these therefore did more willingly given way unto the Treaty at the first, and did afterwards appear more inclined to continued it. The principal and Fundamental Law of their Union is, That in resolutions apertaining to the common interest, the Votes of all of them must equally agreed; so as their businesses proceed but slowly; they being to be treated of apart in every several Province, and alike uniform consent to be gathered from them all by long and tedious persuasions, as their liberty is in all of them alike; The king's ratification being then sundry times consulted on, and with great jealousies, these difficulties were objected by the United Provinces. That the Ratification come in general terms; that it did not contain the essential clause touching their liberty; but that the King still styled the Archduke's Princes of the Low Countries; that the King writ himself, I the King, as he used to do to his own Vassals; that it was written in ordinary Paper, and not in Parchment; as is usually done in things of great importance: and finally, that it was sealed with a little seal, and not with a great one; as it aught to have been. Verreychin being afterwards sent for in, these difficulties were propounded unto him and exaggerated rather in an insolent then free manner: and it was at last concluded, that the United Provinces would by no means accept of the Ratification in manner as it was by him presented. The common people's madness is always very great, but more when they are smiled upon by Fortune. They are full of arrogancy, and rashness, in time of Prosperity; and as base and abject in Ad●versity: So as a multitude must either not be treated with at all, or these alternate defects must be patiently born withal. Verreychin used therefore such dissimulation as was requisite; and endeavoured to remove their suspicions. He assured them that such a ratification would not have been sent from Spain, did not the King intent to make it good; that his intentions were excellent, and that he did vie therein with the Archduke's; he prayed them to allow time for another to come; that he did again promise' in the name of the Archduke's to 'cause another ratification be sent in the same form as was by them desired. The resolution put on in Holland was; that the Archduke's should procure a new ratification to be sent from Spain within six weeks, which should contain word for word the same Declaration of Freedom, which the Archduke's had made in their Instrument; that it should be written in Latin, French, or Dutch, and should be subscribed by the King, with his own name; and to the end that no more errors might be run into, the form thereof was given to Verreychin in all the three Languages. Father Neyen was this mean while returned from the Court; he acquainted them how hard it was to procure the King to sand the former ratification, though in general terms; yet he affirmed that he did verily hope that a second would come in particular terms. The Spaniards knowing what necessity there was to commence a treaty thus with the United Provinces; since no other way would be admitted of. The Archduke's did again signify this necessity; so as not long after the second ratification come from Spain, but it was so penned, as 'twas feared the United Provinces would raise new scruples in admitting it; it contained the pretended declaration of liberty; and all the other clauses that were desired. But in the conclusion this was added by the King; that if the matters of Religion should not be agreed upon as well as the other points, his ratification should signify nothing; and affairs should still continued in their former posture. It was also written in Spanish, subscribed as usually, I the King; and in all things else according to the former manner. Yet it was believed that these last rubs would easily be removed, by the example of the Kings having done the same in the two peaces which were lately concluded with the King of France, and King of England. The other difficulty touching the new added clause, was thought the greater. And that word Religion seemed to be immaturely put in; since it might raise jealousies in the United Provinces; as if it were already determined in Spain to make Propositions against the liberty of their Government, and against that Declaration which the King at the same time made in form aforesaid. The Commissary and Verreychin were sent both together with this second ratification into Holland; who in the presenting thereof, made large professions to the States General again, of the great good inclinations of the King and Arch-duke's towards the common good, and how desirous they were particularly of the low countries welfare. The States took time to given their answer; and after much consultation, their answer according to their wont arrogance, was thus: That the King's ratification was not answerable to the form which they desired; and that among other things the new added clause could not be allowed of: since the King knew very well, as did also the Arch Dukes, that the United Provinces were free Provinces, and would always be so, though no agreement were made. That notwithstanding the States would acquaint every Province with the ratification, and would within six weeks make their resolution known: But with this protestation, that they intended not that by virtue of such a ratification any thing should be propounded which might tend to the prejudice of the freedom of their Government, in case that the Treaty went on. This answer being given, the Commissary and Verreychin returned to Brussels. Whilst affairs were thus negotiated in Flanders, divers interests, passions and ends were upon this occasion discovered to be not only in the neighbouring Princes, but almost in all the Princes of Europe. In Germany, the Emperor Rodulphus the second, pretended that no Treaty of agreement could be made in Flanders without his participation and consent; taking for granted, that the low countries did depend upon the Empire; and therefore no separation could be made therein without his authority: Wherhfore he had written some Letters to this purpose to the Catholic King, the Archduke, and to the United Provinces. The King and Archduke answered him in general terms; as did also the United Provinces; save only that they added a long justification of their cause, and of their war against the Spaniard till the present. Neither was there any more news heard of the Emperor in the whole progress of the Treaty. But Henry the fourth of France, was not so negligent in the consideration of these passages. He had sent Ambassadors upon this occasion at the first in Holland; the truest and most intrinsical end whereof was, that he might have a share in what was to be done, and specially to 'cause jealousy in the Spaniards, and by this means to induce them to make use of him, and to make him Arbitrator in the differences. The King of France was then in his chiefest greatness and prosperity: and enjoyed his kingdom in perfect peace and honour; after having arrived thereat through many difficulties, all which he had overcome with incredible constancy and valour. He considered the Affairs in Flanders, after several manners; on one side he could have wished that the War might continued, and that thereby the affairs of Spain might still be impaired, even till at last they might loose whole Flanders. On the other side he seen himself well strucken in years; his children very young; and that in case he should fail, fresh troubles might in a short time arise in his kingdom, which might chief be fomented by the Spanish Forces of Flanders; that the disorders of those Forces were not so many, but that if the War should continued, very necessity would force them to found out a remedy; nor the danger of their losses such as might not be evaded by the power of so great a Monarch; which made him desire to see Flanders without War, and and the Spaniards without Forces so near at hand. Neither did he like that the United Provinces who were already become so formidably at Sea, might by their growing too great be as dreadful at Landlord For the Heretics of his kingdom could from no part else be better fomented to rebel. The King amid these various considerations had his eye fixed upon these passages of Flanders, and because his authority was very great in the United Provinces, he believed they would never come to any accommodation with the Spaniards without his consent. At the first he seemed to be averse to the affairs in hand; though to say truth, he did not well know what he had best to do: but he did this of purpose to enforce the Spaniards to put the Negotiations into his hands. Great dexterity and cunning was requisite to the leading on of these designs. He therefore chose for this so important affair the Precedent jannine; a man of great experience and abilities; and one who was then chieflyest employed by him in State affairs. He sent Monsieur de Rosse along with jannine (who was sen● extraordinary Ambassador into Flanders) to continued afterwards his ordinary Ambassador in the United Provinces. Having both of them exercised their Offices in the entrance into the affairs spoken of, they stayed in Holland; jannine did diligently observe the whole carriages, and wrought himself every day more and more into the affairs, which still increased the jealousy of the King of Spain and the ArchDukes; who then began to see clearly, that it behooved them to have recourse to the King of France his mediation; who already had complained to the Commissary General in his return to Flanders, that the King of Spain, and the Archduke's had proceeded so far without his knowledge in the aforesaid business. Almost the like passions and artifices appeared in james the first, King of England, who was newly come to that Crown. The same reasons appeared in him for desiring the continuance of the war in Flanders, as did in the King of France: for the King of England being strong at sea, and confiding in the strength of all his Kingdom's situation, as also in the conformity of his ends with those of the United Provinces in favouring heresy, he could not much fear their Forces; though they should grow greater. He was the more secure likewise by having Flushing and the Ramechins' in Zealand, and the Brill in Holland, sea Towns of great Importance in his hands; as pawned for moneys lent by Queen Elizabeth to the United Provinces; and for that their chiefest strength consisted in English and Scottish soldiers, who were in their Army. He foresaw he should have greater cause to be jealous of the Spaniards, if being free from the war of Flanders, they might endeavour to molest him in any part of his Dominions: especially in Ireland, an Island which is almost wholly Catholic, well-affected to them, and much dis-affected to England. Out of these reasons it was believed, that the King of England desired the War in Flanders might continued. But being a great lover of Quiet, and much given to Hunting, and to his Book, and wholly fix● in warring by writings with the Church, it was therefore judged he would not at last, show himself totally averse to see the affairs of Flanders in some sort pacified. To boot that not being able for scarcity of moneys to given any considerable succour to the United Provinces, his power would be but small in persuading or counselling the continuance of war, since he could not much assist it by his Forces. Yet it very much Imported those Provinces to preserve his friendship, were it only that they might raise soldiers out of his Kingdom. Wherhfore they entertained his Ambassadors which were sent into Holland at the beginning of this Negotiation with very much respect, and treated with them with all confidency. The King of England's end in sending of them was almost the same as was that of the King of France: To wit, that he likewise would have a share in the business which was in hand, and to enforce the Spaniards to make use of him likewise therein. The King of Denmark sent likewise Ambassadors to Holland; as also the Prince Elector Palatin, the Elector of Brandenburg, the Landgrave of Hesse, and other Germane Heretic Princes; who all of them seemed to show their good affections towards the United Provinces in so important an occasion. These businesses which were thus begun grew very hot in Holland: every thing was in motion, and great was the expectation what the United Provinces would resolve, as well touching the second ratification come from Spain, as also whither they would continued or break the Treaty. But of all others Count Mourice of Nassaws thoughts were most busied at this time. His Father the Prince of Orange being dead, he being yet but a youth of sixteen years of age, had got into all his Father's Military and Civil employments, with the great good will and approbation of the United Provinces. And increasing no less in valour, then in years, after so many enterprises and prosperous successes, his authority grew daily greater among them. He had won it by Arms, and he thought he could best preserve it by Arms. And by means of the public trouble of war, he hoped some favourable conjuncture might the easilier be opened unto him, of making himself one day Prince of those Provinces. It is not to be doubted, but that his ambition carried him thus high; for his Father was very near attaining thereunto; and his own deserts being added to his Fathers, his hopes aught rather to be augmented then diminished. To boot with the Supreme Government of the Army, he had succeeded his Father in the Civil Administration of Holland, Zealand, Utricht, and Overisel. His brother Count Henry, General of the Horse of the United Provincees, and the Counts William and Earnestus, the one of them Governor of Friesland and Groninghe●, and the other Governor of Ghelderland, were all of them of his House, and depended on him almost in all things, so as the whole government of the United Provinces, as well Military as Civil, may be said to be in his hands: and his Domestic power was the greater by his great friendship and alliance with Foreign Princes. The Negotiation in hand made nothing at all for his present condition, nor for that which peradventure he had an intention to raise up unto himself. And say he had a mind to have hindered it at the beginning; what colour, or what pretence had he so to do? Since the United Provinces in the Proposal made by the Archduke's for a Treaty, had gotten all that they desired; when the first ratification which come therefore from Spain, proved vain, Mourice began to hope well in the breach of the begun Negotiation: and by occasion thereof augmented the common jealousies. He enlarged himself very much and with great fervency in calling to mind their late good successes; so many mischiefs, cruelties, and Horrible Inhumanities committed as he affirmed, by the Spaniards, together with many other things▪ to make all manner of Treaties with them suspicious, and to increase the hatred which those of the United Provinces always bore to that Nation. And though the second ratification was come in very ample manner, yet did not he go less in continuing to do the same, hoping to make this second appear likewise faulty in many things. The time drew near of giving their resolution therein; concerning which they had had many meetings; at last, one day when the Council of the States General was fuller then usual by reason of the importance of the business, 'tis said Count Maurice spoke thus: How much (most worthy Deputies) I have always desired the prosperity of our Republic, all my precedent actions which have made me appear not less my Father competitor, then his son, in her service, may sufficiently manifest. I have not laboured less then did my Father, in always procuring the common good; and if he lost his life in the public cause; I have exposed myself to no less dangers in the defence thereof; and certainly it would have redounded much more to my honour and glory to have died amid Arms, then it did to him to perish by the hand of that base and detestable Parricide, who so unworthily slew him. Noon therefore should more rejoice then I, to hear our Provinces declared to be free States, even by our enemies themselves, did I not think that all these proceed were but couzenages, whereby more easily to draw our Liberties again into their Subjection. I apprehended this even from the beginning of these practices; so that, as I have hitherto ever abhorred them, so do I now abhor them more then ever, and think it now more necessary then ever to break them wholly of, and to throw back this second ratification with the same resoluteness as we did the former. How many tricks, and how many cheats the Spaniards have always used in their like treaties; is too well known to us all. But what need we look after pastimes? Hath not the like been seen, and is not seen in these present negotiations? The first ratification come in general terms, nor did it contain any thing of ratification but the bore name. The second is come since, which is likewise so defective, as in my opinion it aught in no way to be accepted. Do you perceive how the King would have it sent in the Spanish Tongue? a Tongue unknown to us, the true meaning and efficacy whereof we do not understand? Do you observe how he uses the same subscription as he useth to his Vassals? Not having changed any of the other things excepted against. And the addition of the last clause, doth it not evidently enough show his pretensions that it shall wholly depend upon his will whither we shall be free or no? As if from the time that the Duke d'Alba, (that Fury and Firebrand of all the troubles of Flanders) and after him the other Governors had bereft their Country of its privileges, brought foreign colonies thereinto, put the whole country of fire and sword, and given sentence themselves against our liberties, and we had not known how to defend it by our unconquered Forces? We then are free whither the King declare us to be so or no. And our pretence to this declaration is, because it is due to us from all the world, and due to us by him absolutely, without any conditional limitation of ensuing agreement as he pretends in the additional clause; so as it is now too well seen that the Spaniards treat with their wont frauds; and that they would pretend they can never loose by any whatsoever accord that should ensue; the right which they presume to have over our Provinces; that they may afterwards expect new opportunities to oppress them again; it may then be granted, that it is not any public respect, but their own particular necessity which induceth them now to come to agreement with us. The necessity I say of their disorders, which doubtlessly are so many and so great, as we may expect their utter losing of Flanders. What darkness, what obscurity is it then that doth possess our senses? or what hoodwink and untimely wisdom is it which teacheth us to intermit and slacken the course of our victories, whence they are nearest and most certain? their army is in very great confusi●on, without any discipline, without any obedience; corrupted by perpetual Mutinies: And if the war continued, we shall doubtlessly see the whole body of the Soldiery Mutiny, and then their whole Country will rise. How great a part thereof does there already abound in our sense? We on the other side have a flourishing Army, well disciplined, well paid, and well provided of all things. We have the assistance of France, of England, and of the greatest part of Germany. We maintain a Cause, then which noon can be more just; nor can there be more constancy be desired in our People's wills to defend it: To these our advantages by Land, our other progresses at Sea do fully correspond What greater blow could the Spaniards receive from us, then that which we have given them in the East-indieses? What will the other prove which we are preparing for them likewise in the West? To this end, to boot with the public forces, particular Companies of the richest Merchants of all our Provinces are appointed: so as when we shall get footing there, to what straitss and hazards shall we reduce the Spanish Fleet? On the contrary side, how much both public and private advantages, how much honour and glory shall our Commonwealth receive thereby? Our having gone round the Sea where ever the Sun shines, with so many and so illustrious navigations, and having made our names so famous by so many and so glorious Victories, will be the most memorable things spoken of by our Posterity in after Ages. The fear of losing the Indieses, is that which chief causes the Spaniards to come to some accommodation with us. Who will then persuade us to let slip these so propitious opportunities which now offer themselves unto us, and see them turned peradventure hereafter to their advantage? True Victory lies in the making good use thereof. Which not being done, the too late remedy of repentance serves but in little stead. We aught by all means possible endeavour not to fall into such errors; and not suffer ourselves to be deceived by the falls names of repose and peace, and other specious alluring pretences. These are the means wherewith those lull people asleep, whom they intent afterwards to oppress. No Lethargy is more mortal then a Peace, which is to prove worse then war itself. Our people this mean while will grow unsinewed by idleness. We shall loose those friends which our wars have purchased to our cause. But the worst of all evils will lie in the secret venom of discord, which the enemy will in this interim endeavour to introduce among us; and this sort of Plague will be sooner radicated among us them driven out. Thus by means of rest more fatal fare then arms, our Commonwealth would fall into the greatest misfortunes, and the Spaniards by their machinations quietly enjoy what hitherto they have not been able to do with their Armies in the Fields. But I never was an Orator; and as a Soldier me thinks I have spoken more then I need upon such an occasion. Nor can I deny but that my particular passions sway me in what concerns the common good, which is now in hand; which may notwithstanding all of them be reduced to the implacable hatred I bear those, who are our implacable enemies; and hope to make their power more formidable to others, by the rvine of our Republic. The Authority of so great a man assisted by so many and so forcible reasons, prevailed very much with the hearers. john Barnevelt, Advocate General of the Province of Holland, and one of her Deputies in this present Council, was one of those who did most favour the things which were now in Treaty. His Authority was very great not only in Holland, but even throughout the whole Union; in the service whereof he had ever had the chiefest employments, and had therein continually faithfully discharged his trust. So as his credit was such at this time with the Union, and his estimation so great, as he drew commonly most men to adhere to him in all his opinions. He desired to see Count Mawrice his power lessened, to the end that the common liberty might be the more secure both at home and abroad: though this his emulation cost him afterwards his life: For not many years after Mawrice his Faction prevailed so far, as for divers faults laid to his charge, (were they true or false) he was publicly beheaded in Holland. When Mawrice had ended his discourse, Barnevelt, still resolved to defend the contrary opinion, spoke thus: Of so many acts egregious (most worthy Deputies) w changed the Prince of Orange, of ever happy memory, did, and which have been since continued by the Illustrious Count Mawrice, the worthy son of so gallant a Father, in service of our Commonwealth, this is one of the first-fruits we reap, that every one may freely speak his mind in this council, for what concerns the common good; and if it were ever requisite so to do, the nature of the business in hand doth now require it. He hath certainly showed great gravity and wisdom in what he hath said: But since the more weighty the affairs are, so much more necessary it is to have them maturely debated, I hope it will not be displeasing, if I allege all those reasons to the contrary as may be considered in so important an affair. We shall differ in our opinions, but not in our end; which is the like in us all, to endeavour all the advantage and stability which we can to this our Commonwealth. The Illustrious Count did, if I be not deceived, urge two points chief. The one, that the Spaniards do not proceed with sincerity in these negotiations; and the other, that it is mere necessity which makes them now seek to come to some agreement with us, that they may hereafter found some more favourable opportunity to oppress us. As for the first, I hope that noon will deny, but for what concerns the affairs now in hand, we have hitherto obtained all that we have demanded of the Archduke's. 'Tis true that afterwards, the King of Spain's first ratification was faulty, and as such a one, was justly by us refused: but to speak truly, I do not think this second such a one as aught to be rejected; the defects whereof being well considered, do more transgress against the circumstances, then the essence of the ratification which we demand. The essence lies in this; that the King should acknowledge our Provinces to be free, and that he should declare he hath no pretence or claim thereunto; this, this second ratification doth fully contain, as doth also the first Declaration made by the Archduke's. And in fine, it is the very same which we did desire, except it be in the diversity of Language, and in some other petty things of small importance, and in the last clause added by the King. Faults which in my opinion cannot be held any ways essential. First, how can it be doubted but that the true sense and meaning of the Spanish tongue must be understood by us? Here, where the frequent commerce of so many of our Cities with all the Principal Cities of Europe, makes all Languages common and known? To boot that the Archduke's Deputies affirm and given it under their hands that it is in the same Language, with the same Subscription, and alike in all other things to the ratifications of peace between the Crown of Spain, and those of France, and England. Aught we to pretend to more then what was then done to two so great Kings? The greater difficulty would lie in the additional clause, if it were not evidently known that it were to be understood, though it were not expressed; since how can it be denied, but that if no agreement should be made both parties would continued in their former rights? To with, the Spaniards in what is grounded upon violence; and we in what is grounded upon so known Justice. But say the Spaniards after some agreement made, should pretend a Title of right over us, tell me I pray you, wherein could our affairs be therein prejudiced? Should they peradventure, be Judges in such a cause? In such a case recourse must be had to the Tribunal of the whole world; and each party to the favour of their friends; or rather to the Tribunal of Arms, where Armies pronounce sentence, and for the most part the justice of the cause gives the victory. It imports but little then whither their ends be sincere or fradulent in case of agreement: for then they cannot opporess us by their forces. We must above all things endeavour to secure ourselves from this danger, which necessarily consists in one of two remedies; either in continuing the w●● out of hope that their necessity will daily grow greater; or else in ending it by some accommodation, after which our affairs might be better secured. And from hence I come to the second point. I deny not but that their present disorders and necessities are great; but I cannot think them past remedy so far, but that if the war endure the Spaniards may found sufficient forces to do it. I for my part found the Monarchy of Spain to be the same thing that it hath always been, during the whole course of this war; nay rather increased in this interim by the addition of the Kingdom of Portugal, and of the East-indieses, which depend thereupon. I found it to be very strong both at land and sea: Where hath the formidableness of their forces been better seen then here in Flanders? What other power hath at any time maintained so long, so far distant, so hard and so expencive a war? And shall we believe that the Spaniards cannot still maintain it? and that they are not likey to found a remedy for their disorders in these parts; and for any hazard they may run in the East-indieses? the very necessity of making war, will doubtlessly furnish them with means enough to continued it. So then we are again engaged in war; in a new and more obstinate war then the former: and what security can we have that fortune will always favour us? we have likewise our necessities; and if they be at present great among the Spaniards, remember I pray you that they have been greater among us: and that all human things being subject to alteration, and the events of war usually very uncertain; the times may prove propitious again to them, and averse to us. Do not we know how much our war depends upon the aids from France and England? May not the King of France die? Is he not already very old? may not the Kingdom afterwards altar? and shall not we then be deprived of all succour from thence? Do not we likewise know upon what fickle terms the affairs of England stand? The King being a Scotch man, a stranger in that Kingdom, and therie being many other occasions which may 'cause some fear of alteration on his side? how much would the affairs of Spain be bettered by any of these accedents? how much worse would ours be? We aught then to be taught by all reason, and by all the rules of good Government, not to let slip this happy conjuncture of coming to some good agreement with the Spaniards. Fortune is flitting, inconstant, disdainful, and exceeding apt to be provoked: 'Tis now the time to know how to lay hold of her: So as my opinion is, that by all means we aught to accept of this ratification come from Spain, and proceed on to some Treaty of agreement: I confess it is not always in the power of man to enjoy the happiness of peace; but I verily believe it is now in our power to eat the dangers of war; which in my opinion aught by all means to be endeavoured: and certainly we may hope for great advantages from the Spaniards by this accommodation which they do so much desire to make with these our Provinces in this their present necessity: As all Pilots prefix the haven for their end, all travellers their Country, and all motion rest; so all war hath peace for its end, wherein consists man's chiefest happiness; and shall the war of Flanders be the only thing which shall never have an end? and shall all our most advantageous successes, depend always upon the so uncertain events of war? We shall be free from these uncertainties, and from so many dangers which troubles bring with them, by reducing ourselves at last to a quiet condition: we shall then much better re-order the Government of every of our particular Provinces, and of the entire body of the Union, when we shall be in a quiet condition: This our Commonwealth will then break forth from out the duskishness and horror of Arms: which how wonderful a fight will it be, and what unaccustomed praises will it produce in the Theatre of the Universe? when it shall be seen how our Provinces do unite themselves in one body; with what sort of Laws and Magistracy they conspire together; how unwounded the Liberties of each of them remain, and how uninjured it passeth through every one of them, as through so many veins to the entire body of their general Union. We shall have Ambassadors sent to congratulate with us from all parts; who will return rather envying then rejoicing at this our so great felicity. We shall pay the debts we have contracted abroad: we shall ease ourselves of those we have here among ourselves; and we shall in, rich our treasury, by taking of so many and so grievous expenses: Our people shall then know that they are truly free, when they shall enjoy Liberty without any contestation: and being once got into such a condition, what need we fear to be at any time reduced under the yoke of that proud, cruel, and Tyrannical Spanish Government. Barnevels was list'ned unto with much attention: and the reasons alleged by him, appeared to be so weighty and wisely grounded, as after some other consultations, it was at last resolved on by the States General, that they would accept of the ratification: yet there was much ado before Zealand could be brought to join in this Vote, so absolute Authority had Count Maurice in that Province; whereof he was not only Governor, but had a great estate there, and enjoyed such prerogatives, as he appeared rather to be Prince then Governor of that Country. The Archduke's were then acquainted with this the States General's resolution, and 'twas almost in the same words which were used in the answer which was first given to the Commissary and Verreychin when they brought the ratification into Holland. And because the term for suspension of arms was already expired, it was by both sides prorogued, and continued to be so from time to time in new terms, till the end of the Treaty, which was after concluded. I thought good to incert this in this place, to eat the tedious repetition of the same things sundry times. Now all the eyes of Flanders were fixed upon what Deputies the Archduke's would choose to sand, according to the first agreement, into Holland. The greatest weight of the Spanish affairs which were agitated in Flanders lay upon the Marquis Spinola, Camp-master-general of the Army, and upon Manchichidor the Spanish Secretary of War; and as for the Archduke's business, john Richardotto, Precedent of the Privy Council, and Verreychin so often named before, were chief trusted therewith. These four were chosen for Deputies, and Father N●yen was added for a fift, as one who had hitherto had a great hand in the business. Marquis Spinola was already got into great Authority by reason of his so many Employments and Trusts. He was Camp-master-general and Governor of the Army; Administrator, or Paymaster General of the King's moneys: of the Council of State in Spain; and through his hands all the King's affairs in Flanders, as hath been said, did chief pass: and the Archduke likewise seemed to put much confidence in him. Indeed a States man of singular judgement and valour, of incredible vigilancy and industry in the managing of whatsoever business either Military or Civil; and endowed with so many other gallant parts, as he had reason to be esteemed one of the greatest Statesmen that the Crown of Spain hath had these many years. The Secretary Mancicidor was likewise highly esteemed of, for his long experience in the affairs of Flanders: for he had been Secretary of war, even from the time that the Archduke whilst he was yet Cardinal, was come to the Government of those Provinces. In the affairs which belonged properly to the Archduke's: The Precedent Richardetto was not lesle esteemed of; he had for a long time been the man chief employed in affairs of greates importance by the Duke of Parma, and other Governors: and the Archduke, being made Prince of the Lowcountreys, chose him particularly to employ in making the last peace with France, and the like with the King of England; so as almost all the important business of the Country passed through his hands. Verreychin was likewise present at the making of the two abovenamed Peace's, and had long before exercised the place of first Secretary of State, and was always held a man of great wisdom and integrity. Enough hath already been said of the Commissary General and of his endowments. But when the Spaniards who were in Flanders, understood who the Deputies were, and that they were to go to the enemies own homes to treat of agreement with them, it is not to be believed how much they stormed, and how much they complained of the Archduke's in particular. Are the affairs of Spain (said they) come to so low an ebb, that our King must abase himself thus? hath so much time, blood and treasure been spent against the traitorous rebels to bring things to this end? That the affairs of Spain were now in as glorious a condition as ever, but that there wanted fitting instruments in Flanders to manage them: That tthe Archduke had always showed himself to be better at peace then at war, and that now that he seen himself not likely to have any children, his only desire was to spend the remainder of his days in peace and quietness: that it was impossible so great a Monarchy should be without a war; nay it was to be desired that it should always have an Army in the fields for its service. And what other more fitting Theatre could there be found for the seat of its Arms then Flanders? a place so Opulent and so much extent? and placed in the midst of Spain's chiefest enemies and maligners? that if the war could not be always to plentifully maintained, their forces might be lesened, and conssequently their expenses: that thus the vigour of so great a Monarchy might be preserved even to eternity. The Spaniards broke forth into these complaints, and sent them from Flanders into Spain; but to no purpose: for it was then seen, as also during the whole Treaty, that the King and the Archduke did always jump in their opinions: And as for the Deputies going into Holland; without all doubt it might seem in all appearance no ways to agreed with the Kings, and Archduke's dignity: but the form of the Government of the United Provinces considered, no other manner of negotiation could well be had; for their Deputies were so many, that Commissions of bounded, and so many senior to and from, as they were enforced to make orders: to receive new orders, and new Consents from every Province, which if it had been to be done out of their own Country, the Treaty would never have had an end: and though afterwards, as you shall hear, it was concluded in Antwerp; 'twas because all things were already digested, so as they went thither as it may be said, to a business already concluded. The Deputies departed about the end of January 1608; and being come into the United Provinces, they were received by the Governors of their Frontier Towns with all honour, and bravely lodged in all places. They come to the Hague the first of February; and were met half a league without the Town by Count Maurice of Nassaw accompanied by the other Counts of his House, and all the chief men of those parts. The Second BOOK of the TREATY of the TRUCE of FLANDERS. HOLLAND is the greatest, richest, and best peopled Province of all the United seven: nay it so far exceeds all the rest, as it furnisheth half the moneys which are issued out by the whole seven Provinces. It is made by the sea, and sundry rivers a Peninsola, it is in compassed on many sides by the sea, cut through in many parts by rivers: many channels cut by hand join with these rivers, and there by many lakes within it: so as it may be doubted whither it consist more of land or water. Besides, it doth so abound with shipping of all sorts, as it may likewise be questioned, whither the number of movable Habitations on water, or of Houses fixed on land be the greater. This Province is full of Cities, and of a great many lesser Towns. Amsterdam is its chiefest City, and here is the greatest Traffic, not only of Holland itself, but lamost of the whole North: of all its Towns Hague is the principal, an open Village; but so large, so well peopled, and so delicious as it may compare with many Cities. Here did the Counts of Holland formerly build a Palace for themselves to live in, which the United Provinces do now make use of for the meeting of their Counsels which depend upon the Union. Here likewise the Council of the States General do meet almost every day; wherein things of greatest importance are agitated and resolved by the Deputies of the whole seven Provinces. The chief affairs of the whole Union are then handled in the Hague; and here stayed the Catholic Deputies to given a beginning to the Treaty: Before they arrived, the United Provinces had likewise chosen their Deputies; one was chosen for every Province, and two of the best of blood among them, in the common name of them all. And these were Count William of Nassaw, full Cousin German to Count Maurice, and Min here Bredrode: for Holland, Barnevelt was named, and by him the business on the behalf of the United Provinces was chief to be agitated. At their first meeting, nothing was done but the producing of the credential Letters on all sides: they then began to discuss affairs with an intention to come to a perpetual peace if it were possible. The United Provinces offered one Article in the first place, wherein they pretended, that the King of Spain and the Archduke's, should acknowledge them to be absolutely Free States, and should at large renounce all right or claim which might be pretended unto by them or any of their successors, to, or over those Provinces, with an obligation not to make use of their Arms or Titles, or whatsoever other appearance. This last addition appeared too arrogant to the Catholic Deputies, who complained very much thereof to the Ambassadors of France and of England, with whom from the beginning they had had communication in what concerned the Treaty: alleging, That it was an usual thing among Princes, still to retain the Title of States or Kingdoms, though they were lost, or but pretended to, whereof there was examples in the greatest Kings of Christendom. That the Catholic King, styled himself King of Jerusalem, and Duke of Burgony; the King of France, King of Navarre; and that the King of England did still keep the Title of King of France: That the United Provinces would be they alone who would introduce new Laws in the world, and not content to pass from rebellion into liberty, would pretend, as it were by usurpation to such and so rash advantages: in fine, that this was a cause common to all Princes▪ and wherein they were all by this one act injured. The answer which the Catholic Deputies gave hereunto was, that they had no Authority to admit of the Article in manner as was desired: That they would acquaint the Archduke's therewith, and expect their Answer; but the Ambassadors thought these their complaints to be artificials, they imagined that the Catholic Deputies meant to indeer the said renuciation as much as they might; that they might the easilyer induce the United Provinces to given way on their parts in other things, in which opinion they were confirmed by the Answer which come from Brussels, which was, that the Archduke's would consent to the Article in the same manner as it was propounded, if the United Provinces by acknowledgement of so great a benefit, would in lieu thereof abstain from their sailing into the Indieses. The United Provinces seemed to be as much moved by this answer; and their Deputies made equal complaints thereof to the Ambassadors of their confederate Kings and Princes. What do the King of Spain and the Archduke's grant (said they) more then what the United Provinces do already possess? that what should be granted by the King and Arch-duke's was nothing but wind, and a bore Title; whereas if the United Provinces should given over their sailing to the Indieses, they should deprive themselves of the principal and most important part of their Traffic. That they had begun and would continued that their Navigation, which by the Laws of Nature, and right of Nations is allowed to all men. That some other thing might be thought upon which in this point might given reciprocal satisfaction to both sides: But that they should exclude themselves from sailing into the Indieses, was neither to be thought on nor hoped for: and why aught not the spoils of that new world be common to all? That it was of that immense vastness, as more thereof was undiscovered▪ then discovered as yet: and that the right of the occupiers in those parts, differed only in the better knowing how to manage what they possess. Both parties argued this point touching the East-indieses with great stifness and pertenacity; nor would the Catholic Deputies ever discede from their first answer. At last the Deputies of the United Provinces made three Propositions: The first, that according to the nature of all peaces, Commerce might be free both by sea and land to both parties. The second, that for the space of seven years, the United Provinces might continued their Navigation to the Indieses, and that one year before the expiration of those seven years some new composition might be made. The third, that upon the insuance of peace, and due observation of all things on this side the line, the United Provinces might at their own peril continued their Navigation on the other side. The Catholic Deputies were not pleased either with the first or the third propositions. Not with the first, because it left the United Provinces absolutely free to Traffic in the Indieses: Not with the third, because they seen a peace mixed with hostility was not likely to last. They did not appear to be totally averse from the second, so as they would now agreed, that when those seven years should be ended, the United Provinces should for ever forbear from their Navigation to the Indieses. To this their Deputies would by no means consent; this point of the Indieses was much stood upon, and the difficulties thereof enlarged by the particular Company of Merchants in the United Provinces which Traffic into those parts. The Company was chief composed of the Merchants of Amsterdam, and of Midleburgh: and one was sent in the name of that Company to the Hague, to show how great the gain was which they made by their Trafficking in the East-indieses, and how much the continuation thereof did import in other respects. They alleged that they had already introduced commerce in sundry parts of those Countries; that many were the friendships and confederations which they had established there; and that those seas were already frequented by above 150 of their Vessels, and by above 8000 of their Mariners and Soldiers; that great was the gain of particular men, and the advantage not lesle which the public received thereby: that to keep so many of the base sort of people employed who would be always troublesome, when at quiet, what was it but to purge the Republic of so much ill blood, ready to grow corrupt? That the Navigation of the United Provinces into the Indieses had already made Lisbon groan; that the Merchant Towns of the Portuguese in those parts went to wrack; and that their ships were seen to go and come much possessed with fear and apprehension: and were enforced to be at much greater expense then formerly, for they had want not to be greatly vigilant in that their Voyage, not meeting with any contestation, save from the Seas and wind. These and many other considerations were represented by the Company to keep the United Provinces from consenting to the Spaniards demands touching the Indieses: So as both parties adhering to their opinions, nothing was done therein. The Catholic Deputies resolved therefore to sand Father Neyen into Spain to acquaint the King with what past; and particularly to receive Orders for what they should do concerning the Indieses; having first declared to the oother Deputies that they had no Commission to conclude any thing in that business. They told them also, how that the Commissary should be back within two months; whereupon he suddenly took his journey for Spain: and I to eat the tedious prolixity of the lesle important affairs, will here mention only things of greater moment, wherein their differences consisted. The King of Spain and the Archduke's, to show their ingenuity, and the more to honest all conclusion of agreement, desired that the exercise of Religion might be left free throughout all the United Provinces: towards which I had not been wanting, but particularly before the Deputies went for Holland; had pressed the Archduke's much therein: and certainly the United Provinces should by all Rules of good Government, of their own accord have endeavoured to given the Catholics, who were in no small numbers among them, satisfaction: but the hatred to the Catholic Reli●ion prevailing on the one side with the leading Heretics, and the suspicion that this was the more to oblige the Catholics which were among them, to the Spaniards on the other side it was to be believed they would not consent to any thing in favour of the Catholics. The second chief point, was that which concerned commerce: The United Provinces would have had it absolutely Free; and the King and Arch-duke's would have the Indieses excepted, and desired that many insufferable Taxes might be taken of, to which the Merchandizes were subject in Zealand, which were necessarily to pass from thence to Antwerp, and which every day much lessened the Traffic of that City. The other chiefest affairs consisted in the exchange which was to be made of divers Towns and other places, which the one side were Masters of, in the others Country; in the adjusting of confines; in contributions which were paid in several parts by those whose habitations confined on both sides, to free themselves from Military incursions: in the restitution of goods confiscated in the time of War: and in other the like things of Justice. They treated sometimes of one of these, sometimes of another, but very leisurely; for great difficulties were met withal in all of them, without coming to any resolution. The point of exchange of places, was in particular much argued: The United Provinces were possessed of Sluice in the Province of Flanders, together with the Island Cassant, which is but of small circuit, but commodious for the unlading of goods; having in it some Forts. They likewise were Masters of Breda, Bergen-ap zone, and saint Gettringberg, all of them strongly situated both by Nature and Art in Brabrant; together with some lesser places, fortified likewise. On the contrary the Archduke's had Linghen, Groll, and Oldensell beyond the Rhine toward Friesland: Linghen is a very strong Hold, and the other two, places of good consideration. The Arch Dukes would have desired to have changed these three places, with those which the United Provinces had in Brabant and Flanders. And because that which was possessed by the United Provinces, was much the greater and better part, it was thought that the Archduke to make the change more equal, would willingly have quitted unto them all the rest which they were masters of in Ghelderland, or at lest the greatest part thereof. Long dispute was had upon this Article, but to no purpose; for it was not possible ever to agreed upon it. And with the same difficulties and prolixity they proceeded likewise in the other Affairs. This mean while the time was expired wherein the Commissary was to return from Spain; who did not only not appear, but not any news was heard of him: whereupon the United Provinces grew very jealous, and their Deputies began publicly to complain thereof. The King of France was all this while very attentive upon the proceed in Holland; and to make the Spaniards the more jealous, he was easily persuaded upon this occasion to make a new League with the United Provinces. The Contents whereof was, That in case the Peace now in Treaty should succeed, the King of France should be bound to assist the United Provinces with 10000 paid Soldiers, to make the Spaniards the better keep it: And that they on the other side should given the King of France 5000 paid Foot in case the Spaniards should make War upon him. The Spanish and Flemish Ambassadors which were at Paris, quarrelled with the King hereupon; but he justified it with divers pretences, and shown how that the King of Spain and the Archdukes should rather be beholding to him therein, as a business which might the easilyer facilitate the Peace of Flanders which was in Treaty. These artifices were not unknown in Spain, and it was every day better seen, that no agreement would ever be made with the United Provinces, without the King of France his Interposition and Authority. To the end then that he might obtain his mediation upon this occasion, the King of Spain resolved though upon other pretences, to sand Don Piedro de Toledo, one of the chief Lords of Spain, into France. And this was thought then the fit to be done, because the King of France at the same time had sent for Precedent jannines to Paris; with whom advising upon the Affairs of Holland, and the King resolving upon the aforementioned things which might make him desire to see she affairs of Flanders settled; he sent him suddenly to the Hague. But ●annines grew quickly to despair of seeing any Peace concluded. He found the business more perplexed with difficulties then before, and the minds of both Parties more exasperated. The United Provinces could not tolerate the Spaniards slowness; for the Commissary did not appear at all, nor was there any news heard of what he had done in Spain. Whereupon ●h●ir Deputies resolved to know directly the King of Spain's final intention touching the Indieses, which when they should not know, presently to break of the Treaty; and this they pressed upon the Catholic deputies with much instancy, who made them this Answer: That the King desired a happy end of the begun Treaty, and that he would at last condescend to that renunciation which they desired, and in manner as was by them propounded: But that on the other side, he expected that in requital of so important an Affair, they should forbear going to the Indieses; and that moreover they should permit liberty of conscience to the Catholics within their Provinces. That the Commissary was already dispatched from the Court with this answer; and that they had already received orders to acquaint them the United Provinces therewithal. This Answer quite overthrew all hopes of Peace. The United Provinces had put on an unalterable Resolution neither to abandon the Indieses, nor yet to admit the Catholic Religion among them. Whereupon having heard this, they in Writing did presently declare the Treaty broken, and presented the Writing to the Catholic Deputies. The Treaty of Peace being thus fallen to the ground, it remained to see whither they might the easilyer compass a long Truce. The King of England had all this while seemed rather averse then otherwise to the Negotiation in Holland; and having the same ends which the King of France had, to raise Jealousy in the Spaniard, as hath been said, he also made use of the same means. In imitation of the King of France, and almost after the same manner, he had at this time made also a new League with the United Provinces; and though his Authority was nothing neare so great with them, yet was it such, as it might much impede the proceed of the new Treaty for a long Truce: And he had already complained to the Spanish and Flemish Ambassadors who were resident in England, that the King of Spain had sent Don Piedro de Toledo to Paris, putting thereby so great an esteem upon the King of France, and that he had made no manner of Address at all to him. For these respects the King of Spain resolved to sand likewise Don Fernando Girone who was then in Flanders, and who was one of the chiefest Commanders in his Army to the King of England; who seemed to be very well satisfied therewith; and made large promises to intercede for the continuing of the Negotiation in Holland, being thereunto persuaded by his natural Addiction to peace, as also for the aforesaid Reasons. Before the Catholic Deputies departed from Holland, the Ambassadors of France and England began to set again on foot this new Treaty of a long Truce: Insomuch as the Ambassadors meeting one day, jannines in the name of both the Kings made this ensuing Proposition in the Council of the States General: That both their Kings had always considered the Affairs of the United Provinces, as their own particular concernment, having maintained them all this while as such by their Counsels, and defended them by their Forces; but that the end of War must be Peace; That to this purpose the United Provinces had been assisted by both of them; and that both of them were therefore much troubled to see the Treaty of Peace w changed was begun, thus broken: and that they thinking it howsoever much better for the united Provinces to enjoy a commodious and honourable Quiet, then to return to the former difficulties and dangers of war; were pleased to propound unto them by their Ambassadors jointly, a long Truce instead of Peace. That notwithstanding in this Truce, in the first place, and before all other things, it should be declared both by the King of Spain and by the Archduke's, that it was made with the United Provinces as with free Provinces and States, unto which they unade no pretence at all; and that they should be left Free in point of their Navigation to the Indieses. That both their Kings did believed that the United Provinces might be content with a Truce which was to bring with it such important advantages for them; and not only these but peradventure some others also. That greater difficulties were to be feared on the other part; but in case the war were to continued by reason of the Spaniards fault, the Forces of the United Provinces would be thereby the more justified, and both their Kings still the more obliged to maintain their Cause. The States General took time to advice upon the whole with their Provinces. The Ambassadors with like conformity applied themselves to the Catholic Deputies, who having lost all hopes of peace, did very much desire to come to some other accommodation, or composition: So they willingly listened to this new proposal of a long Truce; though they thought many difficulties would be met withal in Spain touching the form thereof: They promised the Ambassadors notwithstanding to use all the diligence they could to overcome them: and having received assurances from the Ambassadors that they would do all good offices for the continuation of the Treaty, and especially from jannines, on whose means and Authority they did chief rely, they at last went from the Hague, after having been 8 months entertained there, and went to Brussels. The Negotiation of the Truce lying then chief on jannines hand, he did all all he could to persuade the United Provinces to allow of it, in the same manner as had been propounded by him and the English Emba●bassadors. Those Provinces seemed well inclined in general toward the Truce, though they wanted not some among them who would have had the King of Spain and the Archduke's make the same renunciation in the Treaty of Truce as they pretended unto in that of peace; but the wiser and more moderate men among them considered that this would be too unjust a pretention, due regard being had to the difference between a Truce and a Peace, This difficulty proceeded chief from Zealand, and was Fautered by Count Maurice by reason of his abovesaid power in that Province, and the almost absolute dependency which Maldereo the particular Deputy of Zealand had upon him. Maldereo had been a menuall servant of the late Prince of Orange, and to say truth, the Interests of Zealand did accord with Count Maurice his particular ends; for the Traffic and wealth of that Province was greatly increased by the war; the choice Mariners who had served and did as yet serve in the voyages to the Indieses, were likewise Zealanders; and next unto Holland, certainly this was the chiefest and most considerable of all the United Provinces. The same difficulties, out of the same reasons were insisted upon by the City of Amsterdam in Holland: but it was thought, that at last the rest of that Province would prevail over the particular opposition of that City, in a favourable acceptation of the Truce; which Zealand did still pertenatiously resist: And Maldereo very zealous in the Cause, endeavoured to make those words suspected, wherein the king of Spain and the Archdukes were to denounce the United Provinces to be free States, in form abovesaid. Whereupon one day that this Clause was treated on, he with great fervency broke forth into these words: Are we Free men, or still Subjects? If we be Freemen, why aught we not to be publicly acknowledged for such? shall it depend upon the Spaniards to allow us what sort of liberty they please, now that they cannot impose that slavery upon us which they would? to wit, a Liberty more servile then our former servitude; since it must depend upon the interpretation of their own words? Do not we know what interpretation they have already given to those words? Do not we know that they take them in such a sense as doth not take from them any pretended right to our Provinces? At this rate we shall get nothing more by this long Truce, then what was had in the bore suspension of Arms: And yet this Truce shall rather look like a Peace; and it may so fall out, as by often Prolongation, it may at last be insensibly turned into the nature of a Peace. Than, as in the Treaty of Peace we did pretend in the first place, That that absolute abnegation should be made by the King of Spain, and the Archdukes which is now Treated of; so aught we still to pretend unto it, and in that form which may clearlyest declare our Provinces to be Free and Sovereign. Shall not he acknowledge them, when all the rest of the whole world Treats with them as such? To what corner of the Earth, or of the Sea is it that the Fame of their Liberty, together with the fame of their Forces is not flown? Let the Spaniards then do the like, or let all Treaties be broken. That necessity which enforces them to come to agreement with us, will likewise compel them to do it in this manner. So since we would make no greater advantage of this their necessity, with our swords in our hands, as we aught, and peradventure might have done, we shall at lest come by it by this contestation of Treaty, in such manner as the victory of words can most promise. These reasons against the abovenamed clause, and many others against the Truce in general, were exaggerated by Maldereo, or rather through his mouth by Count Maurice, who laboured by all other means, and used all his industry that this Treaty of Truce might prove vain, as the other of peace had done; the same things were scattered abroad by his followers, giving out many printed papers to this purpose, not owned by any: they seemed to distrust the foreign Ambassadors, and 'twas whispered that though the two Kings advised to Truce, yet for their own self-interest they would not totally forbear assisting the United Provinces though contrary to their Council, they should reassume their Arms; that howsoever it was requisite to return to Arms, since it was undoubtedly to be believed, that the present necessities being over, the Spaniards would not longer observe the Truce: That in the mean while, the people of the United Provinces, cheated by the abusive names of Peace and Quiet, would loose their former vigour and constancy? That they would hardly be brought to contribute those moneys afterwards, for the war, which at first they did so willingly part withal: And that all these would be seeds to produce pernicious discords among their Provinces. Lastly, they concluded, That though the Spaniards should observe the Truce, it would be requisite howsoever to keep their Frontiers still we looked unto; The which being so many, and the Jealousies on all sides being now likely to prove so great, the expense in time of Truce would be well nigh as much as in the time of War. How much better would it then be to continued the War, and not to loose the present occasions which did all of them so smile upon them, and frown upon the Spaniards? Affairs leaned already towards discord, and the Zealander Deputies threatened openly a separation from the rest of the Provinces, if contrary to the form of common Government, the rest would resolve upon Truce without the particular consent of Zealand. jannines loitred now no more, but judging this a fitting occasion to show his experience, and force of his advices, one day when their contestations grew highest, 'tis said he spoke to the Deputies of the United Provinces in this manner. Neither did my King ever think (worthy Deputies) that so long contestations could have had place here among you in so great an Union; nor did I ever believed that such distrust were to be found here, as some of you seem to have of my behaviour. I will speak of my own, leaving the English Ambassadors either to justify themselves, or make their just complaints. For what concerns my endeavours, I will only say, Execution is the only share I have therein. So as to mistrust them, will be much more to offend my King then me. And to say truth, what greater injury can he receive then this? He having always showed himself so partial to your Commonwealth, as he hath almost never made any difference between the Interests of his own Kingdom, and of your Commonwealth. When he was hardly yet come unto the Crown, and had hardly, after so many Domestic and Foreign oppositions, settled his own affairs, the first thing he did was to assist your Provinces. From that time to this he hath not been wanting in aiding you with Monies, Men, and Counsel; and to make your Cause appear the juster in all other respects, by his owning it. Doubtlessly he pretended to assist a Just Cause: but the justest Actions do not always prove the most useful. Nay these of yours might have been thought the more dangerous, by how much their power is the greater, who take themselves to be offended. The liberty of your Provinces may be said to have sailed into the Haven, chief by the sails of his Favour. And because we cannot now establish it upon the Anchor of Peace, my King endeavours at lest to fasten it upon the Anchor of Truce, which may prove as advantageous to you. Let us then consider whither such an Agreement may be truly advantageous to your Affairs: Which when it shall be known, as I hope it will, sinister discourses will then soon cease; which if they do not, it will appear at lest, That they proceed from particular passions, veiled over with the semblance of Public good. The business is then touching the making of a long Truce; and whither the chiefest endeavour aught to be, That your Provinces should be therein clearly acknowledged to be Free. We Ambassadors think the clause by us propounded sufficient to that purpose: That the king of Spain and Archdukes should declare that they made Truce with your Provinces as with free Provinces and States, unto which they make no pretence at all. But there are some among you who differ from us in opinion, thinking it to be too Genericall and Dubious; and who would have the King of Spain and Archdukes make the same absolute renunciation now, as was pretended unto when there was a Treaty of Peace. I cannot notwithstanding part from my first opinion; for it appears to me, that to boot with the difference that there is between a Peace and a Truce, this Declaration may be thought to make more for your liberty then the other. Tell me I pray you! have not you always declared That you have taken up Arms against your Prince, enforced thereto by necessity? And that the war on your side could not be more just, because it could not be more necessary? and by the same reason have you not set your Provinces at Liberty by your own Authority? Than if you pretend upon so good grounds to be free, what need you now that the King of Spain and the Archduke's should make these renouncings? Do not you see, that such like renouncings of right, would presuppose it to be more manifest on their behalf? and that i● such a case much more should be confessed by you, then granted by them? do not you know that they can grant nothing to the prejudice of their successors? Kingdoms cannot otherwise make any contract, nor kings make any alienable part therein? and since they given the Laws to others▪ they must likewise in this behalf receive it from their Crowns. How much better is it then that your Provinces be declared by the king and the Archdukes to be free by a general clause, and that the agreement which is now spoken of, may follow with this presupposition of your Liberty, without making it doubtful by any other kind of clauses, instead of making it more clear? this form is not only sufficient, but best. And if it be not sufficient with the contrary party; think you that if the Spaniards would not observe the Truce for some other ends of theirs, they would ask your opinion first before they would break it? and that they would first argue whither they have any right over you, or no? This is the custom of private suits, not of public Causes; The controversies whereof are at last reduced to Field-forces, where he that overcomes hath the Right, and no account of the Victory is given. So as you need not care what interpretation the contrary party will given to those words wherewith they do acknowledge you to be free. That which imports you, is, That your people hold themselves to be confessed to be free by those words, and not to be made so. And that the Princes your friends understand them in the same sense. So as if it be needful to fall to arms again, your People may be more ready then ever to reassume them, and that your Friends may show themselves more disposed then ever to favour your cause. But it is too well known how much more easy it is to use constancy in troubles, then moderation in prosperity. Tell me I beseech you, those who are the most zealous among you, when did they ever think that the king of Spain and the Archdukes were to condescend to Treaties so advantageous for your Provinces? and will you loose this so happy occasion? shall vain shadows prevail more with you then essential reasons? shall seditious Papers which are every where scattered abroad, be of more validity among you then the sincere and wise Counsels of two Kings who are so affectionate unto your Cause. Now is the time then to resolve upon, and to embrace this agreement which is now offered. Do you see how the Swissers have fared? take them for your example. And by the similitude of their affairs and yours, hope for the like success. The Swissers took up arms at first against their Princes, not being able longer to undergo the grievances of their Government: nor were they above two or three Cantons at the beginning, and those the weakest among them; but their People gasping for Liberty, and defending it with equal vigour both of body and mind, they made invincible oppositions to their Enemy's Forces; till being unconquerable by the forces of the other Cantons, and the strength of their own Alpester situation, their Enemies despaired of ever subjugating them. At last they ceased fight, and from tottering agreements they come to a firm and continual peace. And who will now dispute the Swissers Liberty? why may not your Provinces hope for the like success? the severity of the Spanish Government made Holland and Zealand take up arms at first; their People valiantly withstood their Enemies: The Sea, Rivers, and the strength of their Natural situation fought for them; your other Provinces come in afterwards unto them; and all made such resistance to the contrary Forces, as there is not any example to be had of so long a war. The successes have been various; but at last they have proved so propitious to you, as a Treaty of accommodation was sought for by your Enemies; and now we are upon the point of a long Truce: which if it succeed, will doubtlessly prove very advantageous for your affairs, and will easily be hereafter renewed upon the same advantages, or turned into a perpetual peace, which may prove yet better for you. That which I have hitherto said, seems to me to be sufficiently clear. In fine, there will be no doubt of your Liberty by this Clause, which is propounded: Nor is it lesle to be doubted that a Truce will be more advantageous for you, then unnecessitated to subject your selves to the uncertain events of a new war. Fortune is generally seen to have too great a sway in war; and that mocking at human arrogancy, she too often makes the more powerful given way unto the weaker; and Losses ensue where Victories were expected. To witness which, and pass by so many other examples; What more memorable precedent can you have thereof, then what so lately befell here before your own Eyes in the Archdukes own person at Newport? where instead of being Victor, as it was assuredly hoped, he was overcome, wounded, and very neare being taken prisoner. By means of this Truce you will escape so many and so dangerous uncertainties of war; you will in the interim establish your Government the better; you will ease your people of their disbursements; you will continued your former Traffic into the Indieses; and you shall finally see an end of those hateful titles of Perfidiousness and Rebellion, which hath hitherto been given by a great many in the world to your motions and proceed in arms. And who can doubt but your Provinces will hereafter willingly concur in such Expenses as shall be needful, since they will be so easy in comparison of what they have been? and so much the more willingly, by how much men do more naturally desire to enjoy quiet, then to live in troubles: and by how much Liberty is the sweeter, after having made trial of servitude. And surely it is to be believed that those to whom the government of your people shall be committed, will use the same care and vigilancy in the administration of public affairs in time of truce, as they have prudently done hitherto in the time of war: their chiefest care will be still more to establish the present concord, which is the soul which gives life unto the body, and the heart which maintains it: and and hence proceeds that miraculous temper which of many makes but one, and of but one many; but yet such as whither they be severed or conjoined do always conspire to the same end. Thus your affairs being well ordered within your selves, you shall have little need to fear foreign dangers: and thus your Truce being at last turned into peace (as 'tis to be hoped it will be) my King shall see the same success in your affairs as he hath seen in his own, and whereby his kingdom is now made happy: to wit, after war peace, after troubles rest, and after the sacking and burning of Towns, and all the orher miseries of Arms, the commodity, security, and felicity of quiet and peace. The Majesty and presence of the King of France himself; seemed to break forth in the Precedent jannines countenance and words. He afterwards gave what he had spoken more fully in writing, to the end that the people might come to the better knowledge thereof, and that they might the easilyer effect the agreement which was in Treaty. The like offices were done by the Ambassadors of England, and to overcome fully the pertenacy of the Zealanders, it was resolved that Deputies should be sent into Zealand in the name of the six other Provinces, to induce that Province to conformity with the rest: which after much difficulty was at last effected, and all of them concurring now in the same resolution; the Ambassadors began again to labour to overcome the difficulties in dispute. Continual correspondency was had by Letters between jannines and Richardetto; so as the negotiation of what was needful past between them; but the King of Spain needed not lesle labouring to be brought to given way to the Truce: news was sent to Spain of the Proposition made by the Ambassadors of France and England, and of the new Negotiation introduced by their means. The King would have been well enough pleased with the Truce, had it been according to usual form, and all things left in the same terms on both sides, as they were at present; but to declare the United Provinces to be altogether free, and to suffer them in express words to traffic in the Indieses, seemed to put too great a difference between the present Treaty, and ordinary Truces: yet 'twas seen that 'twas impossible ever to come to any accommodation without this Declaration of Liberty; and that if the United Provinces had stood so absolutely upon it before they would be brought to a bore suspension of Arms for a few months, they would now be much more resolute in it, in a Truce which was to endure for many years. The Archduke's, who seen the difficulties and dangers of the war in case it should be continued, at a nearer distance, were easilyer induced to given way to the Proposal made by the Ambassadors; and jannines both by word of mouth, and by Letters, had endeavoured to persuade the Catholic Deputies, that to declare they made Truce with the United Provinces as with free Provinces and States unto which the King and the Archduke's made no pretence at all, did not any ways prejudice, the right which the King or Arch-duke's might pretend to have over them. He had showed how that it was a general Declaration; that the word (as) bore with it a sense of similitude, and not of propriety: That in the declaring of one man's being friends with another, 'twas never said I hold him as a friend; that the adding in the last words, not to pretend unto any thing, had reference to the ambiguity of the former words: And finally that such a Declaration could not admit of any interpretation, save only during the time of the Truce. That then the King and the Archduke's aught to be content to make it; since it was involved in words which might satisfy both parties. First, The unskilful multitude of the United Provinces, for the outward appearance of their pretended Liberty; them the King and the Archduke's; for the true substance which was retained in them of leaving their former right still unhurt. Than opening himself more freely, jannines said; My King in such a case, would not make any difficulty in granting this Declaration; for if the United Provinces when they shall betake themselves to Arms shall not have better Canons and Muskets; words and interpretations will avail them but a little. In this manner, and by these wary and wily ways, jannines as a good mediator, endeavoured to draw both sides to a Truce; to which the Archduke's were easily persuaded, and endeavoured to bring the King to be so likewise; showing that by this, neither they nor the King should do any thing more, then what was yielded unto at the first suspension of Arms; much repugnancy did notwithstanding appear in the King. 'Twas thought in Spain that the Clause wherewith the United Provinces were to be declared Free States, though it were limited, would generally be interpreted in favour of their Liberty; and that when they should have got their desires in that behalf, the King would not obtain leave for the exercise of the Catholic Religion in their Country, which he was resolved to have by way of interchange; and moreover if the Article concerning the Indieses should be condescended unto, how much would the King be thereby damnified? how much reputation would he thereby loose? To which difficulties the Archduke's replied, showing that when the King resolved to have the abovesaid requital, 'twas only to be understood, if the peace should be concluded; and that the King and the Archdukes having absolutely renounced all their right, the united Provinces were absolutely free; that the present negotiation of the Truce did differ very much; by which the King nor the Archdukes could not loose any piece of their former right, that it was not to be doubted but that a clause so general and so limitated, would be interpreted rather in favour of them, then of the contrary party. That the Ambassadors themselves thought so; as also divers of the Inhabitants of the United Provinces, who were against the Truce, as that which would be no whit more advantageous for them, then was the bore suspension of Arms. And as for the point of the Indieses, they seemed to have hopes to end it so, as it should be no considerable prejudice to the King. These reasons were not taken as fully satisfactory in Spain; but on the other side, the King did very much desire the Truce, and that the so great, and so unnecessary expenses of Flanders should cease. The Duke of Lerma was then in great authority with the King; and having gotten the sole power over the King by such arts as were available in peace, he was unwilling to share it with them who might gain it by such means as war affords: which made him from the very beginning very earnest in endeavouring the negotiation: and he did now no lesle labour that it might come to some good event of agreement; the same desires were known to be in the Archduke; who therefore resolved to sand his Confessor to the Court of Spain, to answer all the difficulties which were insisted on in Spain, the which was thought necessary also to put an end to so long a negotiation, wherein above two years had already been spent; which had so tired the two mediating Kings, as they began already to protest that they would meddle not more therein, if it were not all the more speedily ended. Father Inico di Brazuela, of the Order of the Dominicans, was the Archduke's Confessor, a very learned and upright man, and one who had been long experienced in the affairs of Flanders: so as men hoped well of him, and of his fidelity, that he might reconcile affairs with the King and State-Officers, he being a Spaniard, a Votary, and of a very noble Family, and commendable life. He was particularly to take all scruples from the King in the point of pretending by way of interchange the exercise of the Catholic profession in the time of Truce, whereof he was to press the necessity even for the Cause of Religion itself. By representing, That if they should return to Arms again, manifest hazard would yet be run of losing more then formerly on the King and the Archduke's behalf in Flanders, and consequently of quite losing the Catholic Religion in the yet obedient Provinces, instead of regaining it in those that were revolted. The business was all this while put on by the two Kings Ambassadors: but because to negotiate by way of Letters was long and tedious, the Ambassadors minded the Catholic Deputies who had been in Holland, that it would make more for the purpose to have the meeting in Antwerp, to end those difficulties which yet remained concerning the negotiation. This Proposition was willingly listened unto by the Archduke's; whereupon the Ambassadors, and the Catholic Deputies, met in Antwerp in the beginning of February 1609. The greatest difficulty was touching the point of the Indieses. The Ambassadors had always assured the United Provinces, that in the Truce they should be permitted to Traffic thither; and they therefore desired that that Article might be laid down in clear and express words. On the contrary the Catholic Deputies desired that if it should be impossible to come to a Truce without condescending to that point, it might at lest be understood by tacit circumlocutions, then by nominating the Indieses expressly. They desired also howsoever, that the United Provinces should forbear from coming into or from trafficking in those parts of the Indieses, which were already under the Crown of Spain. At last after much arguing this point was agreed upon, and was couched in such terms as both the United Provinces, and the Catholic Deputies were satisfied therewith: for the name of the Indieses was left out, and the said Provinces were forbidden entering into the King's Countries in those parts: And Richardetto had want afterwards to say, that this Article was so obscure, as he himself did not understand it: much disputation was likewise had upon the Article of Contributions: 'twas said that the United Provinces received every year 300000 Crowns of Contribution money, which was a great help to their expenses. The Archduke's did not receive near so much; but because these moneys were all raised by hostility, it was thought a thing too repugnant to the public tranquillity which was endeavoured, that this kind of Hostile proceed should be continued in times of quiet: so as the United Provinces were at last persuaded, that all contributions of both sides should be laid down. On the contrary 'twas necessary to yield to the pretention moved by them, that the precincts which did appertain to such Towns as were enjoyed both on this and on that side, should be restored to the said Towns. Touching which point little or nothing returned to the Archduke's hands, whereas large boundeurs were restored to the Towns of Breda, and Berghenap zone, together with some others in Brabant which were in the possession of the United Provinces? yet the Archduke's did so far prevail, and my endeavours were also so earnest therein, as the exercise of the Catholic Religion only was left in those precincts, as it was before. To the which the United Provinces obliged themselves apart, being promised by jannins and Rossi his Colleague, who gave it them under their hands, that the King of France should oblige himself to see it performed. Touching the point of exchange of Towns, there was no means of accommodation therein to be found; so as it was resolved that each party should still enjoy what they did possess at the present: nor would the United Provinces ever suffer themselves to be persuaded in the point of taking away the Taxes and other impediments to which those vessels were liable in Zealand which passed through the Scheld to come to Antwerp, whereby that City was much endamaged, as hath been said. This business was referred to be propounded and examined in a friendly manner after the Truce should be concluded. And the Archduke's hoped by the benefit of the Truce, the better to accommodate their own Ports in Flanders, into which much merchandise was to be brought, which in time of war went necessarily into Holland and Zealand; because their Havens were continually blocked up by many of the United Provinces men of war. These were the chief points on which the Ambassadors of France and England treated with the Marquis Spinola, and the other Catholic Deputies in Antwerp: the Catholic Deputies endeavouring to proceed as slowly as might be, that the Archduke's Confessor might have time to negotiate in Spain, and to sand away the resolution which was expected from thence; which not long after come; and was the same in sum which the Archduke's had desired, and the Confessor by the reasons alleged by him, had persuaded the King unto: great consultations were had notwithstanding before this determination, both in the Counsel of State, and among the gravest and learnedst Ecclesiastics of Spain: for the King would be fully satisfied in all those affairs which were to be considered in so important a business, before he would suffer it to be brought to a conclusion. The Confessor himself returned soon after; so as the affairs being fitted by all parties for an agreement, the two Kings Ambassadors, who after the negotiation at Antwerp, were go to given an account of the whole business to the United Provinces, thought it fitting to return again to that City, and to bring thither the same Deputies of the United Provinces, who were first employed in negotiating the business in Holland; which was approved of by the Archduke's, and at the same time the Catholic Deputies returned thither likewise, among which was Commissary Neyen, who was then returned from Spain. The United Provinces thought this to be the business of highest nature, and of greatest importance which had befallen them since their withdrawing themselves from the obedience of the Crown of Spain, and therefore it was judged necessary that it should be concluded by the authority of the whole body of the great Assembly representing the General Union; and that the Assembly should consist of as many Deputies, as could be gathered together upon so great an Occurrency. The Town of Berghen-ap-zone was made choice of to this purpose, situated not many leagues from Antwerp. Here the great Assembly met, and 'twas said that the Deputies were eight hundred in number. The Deputies of both sides, together with the two Kings Ambassadors, met every day in Antwerp, in the public Palace of that City. From whence whatsoever passed from time to time was sent to Brussels to the Archduke's, and to the United Provinces in Berghen-ap-zone, and resolutions were suddenly taken. When all points were then adjusted, after so many and so long obstructions, a Truce for twelve years was established and concluded on the ninth of April in the year of our Lord one thousand six hundred and nine, betwixt both parties: The Articles were eight and thirty. In the first it was declared, that the Archduke's made Truce with the United Provinces as with Free States and Provinces, unto which they did not make any pretence at all; and they obliged themselves that the King of Spain should ratify the same Declaration, together with all the rest, which was afterwards done in such manner as was requisite. The other chief Articles contained the affairs of chiefest importance, as hath been showed above; and in the rest divers resolutions were contained, touching the affairs of Justice; and concerning rather particular then public Interests. Thus did this Negotiation of Flanders end at last; the Issue whereof was so long expected throughout all Europe. And truly at this Truce, as if it had been at an universal Quiet, all Europe seemed to rejoice, which had seen for so many years, and amid so many fatal and dreadful spectacles, the blood of all her Nations run upon the Theatre of Flanders. A RELATION OF THE COMMOTIONS Which happened in FLANDERS In the year 1616. By reason of the United Provinces taking the Town and Castle of juliers. And what Negotiations were afterwards had to accord the Differences between the ELECTOR of Brandenburg, and the Duke of Newburg upon their pretended succession to the state of the House of Cleves. WIlliam, Duke of Cleves dying about the end of March, in the year 1609. and the Male line of that Family failing in him, divers Princes of Germany laid presently claim to the Inheritance of his estate, by the right which lay in the Female line. William had had four Sisters married into Germany; The first to the Duke of Prussia; The second to the Duke of Newburg; The third to the Duke Zweeburg; and the fourth to the Marquess of Burgantz. The first died before William, and left one Daughter behind him, who was afterwards married to the Elector Marquesle of Brandenburg; and therefore William being dead, the Elector pretended that the right to that estate fell to his wife, by the mother's side; and that his wife's mother as she who was the eldest, was to be preferred before all the other sisters. Newburg made use of the same pretence of eldership; and said, that his wife, being the eldest sister living, should succeed in the first place: The other two pretended that all the four sisters had equal right to the succession, and that therefore the Inheritance was to be divided into four equal parts. To both which these four Princes, the Duke of Saxony moved an ancient pretence of his, and the Duke of Nevers made another claim; Brandenburg and Newburg took possession presently; though somewhat withstood by the deceased Duke's Vassals, who desired it might first be declared by the way of Justice, to whom the succession did lawfully appertain: But the Emperor proved a much greater obstacle herein; for he pretended, that the Inheritance should be in him, by way of sequestration, till it should be legally declared who should be Heir. In this respect he, first by threats, and afterwards by sending Archduke Leopold to juliers to see the sequestration made, endeavoured to take the possession from Brandenburg, & Newburg; in whose behalf the Kings of France and England, the United Provinces of Flanders, and divers other Princes of Germany did appear; by whose means an agreement was made between the two Dukes, that they should equally possess those Countries till the main cause should be decided. The Emperor's threats proved therefore vein, and vain the means used by Leopold in his name; for those two Princes, assisted by a powerful succour from France, England, and the United Provinces; Leopold was enforced to forgo juliers, and to quit those Territories. It was not discovered that the King of Spain, or the Archduke Albertus did any ways incline to meddle in the aforesaid differences; so as Leoplod could have no succour from Flanders. Only they did resolve, not to permit that the United Provinces should make any advantage within those parts, by any whatsoever pretence: And because they, the United Provinces had caused some jealousies that they would keep the Town of juliers, which was fallen to Brandenburg, and Newburg chief by the means of their Soldiers, in whom those Duke's greatest strength did consist in this succour; therefore in case of such a novelty, the Archduke and Spaniards had secretly resolved to do the like in some other part of those Countries; hoping that one novelty might serve to cure another, and that then by an enterchangable restitution of the possessed Towns, their wont new-tralitie in those parts might be continued, and the controverted succession might be decided in its proper Tribunal of the Empire. But the United Provinces did not at that time make the apprehended invasion: So as the two Princes continuing their former entire possession, all things on all sides were then reduced to a quiet condition. The Elector of Brandenburg had from the very first sent one of his Brothers, and Duke Newburg, his eldest son, to take by agreement the forenamed Possession, and both of them jointly to govern those Countries: Their incomes were equal, equal their Garrisons, and they shared alike in the administration of government: For what concerned Religion, 'twas left in its former condition; in the public exercise the Catholic Religion did generally prevail; but in many parts the number of Heretics was the greater, who were most of them Lutherans, and Calvinists. Brandenburg was a Calvinist, and Newburg a Lutheran. For all this they kept both of them most commonly in Dosseldorp, a Town situated upon the Rhine, wherein the Dukes of Cleves did usually reside; nay, they lived both of them in the very Castle of Dosseldorp, following their several Sects, and for all other things, they administered Justice in common: but in fine the saying is true; That a Kingdom will admit of no Companions: This correspondency did not long continued between these two Princes; small jealousies began at first to creep in; then greater suspicions grew up; and at last they broke into open discord. Each of them endeavoured particular adherency, and to make their own sect greater at home, and to have potent friends abroad: For what concerned foreign friendship, Brandenburg had the better at first; for the United Provinces inclined manifestly towards him as well in respect of Religion, as having also formerly held very good friendship and correspondency with his house: Wherhfore Newburgs' Son, knowing that he should always have need of potent friends abroad, and being formerly sufficiently inclined to turn Catholic, did the more dispose himself to join with the Catholic party in ●ermany; which he clearly testified by his marrying with the Duke of Bavaria's daughter: Being married, though he did not at first suddenly declare himself, he was presently held for a Catholic by the contrary faction; The Heretics grew very jealous to see Newburg so neare allied to the house of Bavaria and to see that he had the Elector of Cullen, who was the Duke of Bavaria's brother so neare his neighbour; and many Commodities of his Electorship, and of his Bishopric of Liege so neare at hand; both of which did confine upon a great part of the late Duke of Cleves estate. They did moreover consider, that the Duke of Bavaria, to boot with his being one of the chiefest Princes of Germany, and one of the most zealous for the Catholic Religion; he together with the Elector of Mentz was head of the Catholic league, made but a few years before; and he himself alone head of the forces, if there should be any occasion to use them: so as they thought, that he to boot with his own peculiar forces, might easily by his means make his son in law Newburg be assisted by the forces of the whole league. But these were not the jealousies which did most vex the Heretics: that which troubled them most was, that the match between Newburg and Bavaria was made by the intervening, and authority of the King of Spain and Archduke Albertus; and that therefore upon all occasions Newburgs' interest was likely to be favoured by the neighbouring forces of Flanders. Newburg, on the otherside did not only suspect the forces of the United Provinces, but those of England and of the Heretical league of Germany, which was not long before made in opposition of the Catholic league: As for France, 'twas doubtful to which side it would incline; but 'twas at last concluded that it would either stand Newtral, or that if the King of Spain should move, the French would withstand the Spaniards. This was the condition of the affairs of Cleves and juliers both at home and abroad, in the beginning of the year 1614 The Elector of Brandenburg's Brother was dead a little before this; so as he had seen his eldest son, a youth of above eighteen years of age, upon whom his Mother's right was to descend, to be in his place; who tarried a while in the Town of Weasel, and then went to the Town of Cleves, from whence the whole Dukedom has its name: and on the other side, the Palatine of Newburg, (for so was the Duke and Duchess of Newburgs' eldest son called) continued his residency in Dosseldorp. Brandenburg's son had many councillors placed above him, for his Governors; but he was chief guided in all things by the advice and authority of the United Provinces. The Palatine of Newburg did himself undergo the burden of all the business which did occur, which he shown himself very capable of, as well by reason of the maturity of his years, as for many other excellent endowments both of body and mind: the Jealousies and discords both of Brandenburg, and Newburgs' side were already apparent to all men: and because it was impossible but that some important alteration must needs hap, all the eyes of the Northern parts were bend upon the affairs of the Cleves and juliers, and great expectation was had on all sides of what would befall: the mean while the spring come on; in which time the Palatine of Newburg met with the Elector of Cullen, and tarried some days with him; which occasioned a new and greater suspicion among the Brandenburgians; nor did the Marquis himself any longer delay Innovations: He and his men, favoured by the soldiery which were in the United Provinces nearest Garrisons, endeavoured to surprise, and to make himself absolute master of the Town of Dosseldorp, at a time when Newburg was not there: but being discovered by them that were within, he failed in his enterprise. Newburg was hereat mightily moved; and the neighbours not less: among which the Archduke, considering particularly, that if the two forenamed Princes should take up Arms, it would be a business of great consequence, and that from every lest sparkle which was thereby to be raised, some important fire of combustion, might break forth, and be enlarged thereabouts; he therefore resolved on his side to use all possible means, that some remedy might be found out whereby the differences might be composed. He writ to both the Princes, exhorting them to agreement, and declared that both himself and the King of Spain would bend their forces against him of the two who should first offer at any novelty: He writ thus to both of them that he might not appear partial to either of them: He likewise dealt with the United Provinces, to the end that they might endeavour the preservation of Peace between the two Princes: He likewise desired the Queen Regent of France, that she would interpose her authority with the two Princes, to the same purpose. And Lastly, he endeavoured an assembly of divers Deputies, not only in the name of Brandenburg, and Newburg, but of other Princes also, who should play the part of Mediators, either to establish the former agreement better between them, or to renew another which might be more satisfactory to them both. The United Provinces seemed to desire peace between the two Princes; which they signified to the Archduke by way of Answer: and gave the like answer to the instances made unto them by the Queen of France, at the Archduke's persuasions: Adding moreover, that if necessity should enforce them to take up Arms, they would resolve on nothing before they had acquainted her Majesty with it: All which things were imparted to the Archduke, both by the Ambassador of Flanders, who was at Paris, and by the French Ambassador who was at Brussels. Notwithstanding all this, the Archduke and the Spaniards, doubted that the Queen of France her intercession (France itself being then full of troubles) would not be of sufficient authority with the United Provinces, to detain them within requisite terms; neither were their doubts vain: Not many days after news was brought of another Innovation made by Brandenburg, much greater then that of Dosseldorp, and fomented by the United Provinces more openly then was the other. Garrisons (as I have told you before) were placed in the name of both the Princes, and in equal numbers, where it was necessary to place them: the chiefest was put in the Town and Castle of juliers; the Governor of which Town and Castle was one who had served in the Army of the United Provinces, and who did much depend upon Count Maurice, General of their Army. Brandenburg under pretence of fear (which was likewise his colour for attempting to surprise Dosseldorp) that Newburg had designed to drive out Brandenburg's part of the Garrison, and make himself absolute master of juliers, resolved to make himself master of it; which about the beginning of May he effected in this manner. Brandenburg's soldiers took up Arms one night, and easily drove out Newburgs' men, who were surprised at unawares, and when they were dispersed both out of the Town and Castle; and suspicions upon suspicions being pretended by the Governor, he suddenly brought in, at first a small number of Soldiers out of the nearest Garrisons of the Low Countries, and afterwards a strength of above 2000 Foot, together with some Horse, all of them belonging to the United Provinces; who did honest this their action with a specious pretence. They said that the coming of their Forces into juliers. was only to preserve the public Peace, which the two Princes would by their Arms violate: that Brandenburg's men should likewise be put out of juliers; and that they would keep the Town and Castle as deposited in their hands, till the two Princes should come to a better agreement. This novelty happening, Newburg resolved to meet with it by another, though not of such concernment. He presently possessed himself wholly of the Town of Dosseldorp, and began presently to raise some Fortifications there. Dosseldorp lies upon the banks of the Rhine; 'tis a little Town, but pleasant by reason of its situation, and particularly on the Castle side, which answers upon the sight of the river. The Castle is not Fortified, but serves rather for a dwelling house then for a strong hold; whereas the Town of juliers is greater, and is fortified by a Castle built after the modern fashion, with some Royal Bulwarks; it commands a fertile and large Country, extended in a spacious plain, which is called the Dukedom of juliers, taking its name from the Town: the seat thereof is important, for it lies between Cullen, Liege, and the Frontiers of those Provinces of Flanders which are next Germany: so as it may be said to be one of the chiefest Ports on that side toward Germany: and 'twas thought a business of great moment, that the United Provinces should be entered juliers: and being considered as it related to the affairs of Flanders, it was a manifest advantage to the United Provinces, and consequently a great prejudice to the Archduke and to the Spaniards: and by it also the reputation of the Archduke, and of the Crown of Spain was too foully blemished: the Spaniards which were in Flanders said with much indgnation: Was it not sufficient for the United Provinces to have made a Truce, almost wholly after their own will, and to have used such insolences both during the Treaty and since, but that now they must invade newtral Countries in an hostile manner? and therein violate the public faith? without any the lest claim of particular right? what did there remain for them more to do now, unless it were to erect a Tribunal in Holland, whereby to given Law to the whole North? since arrogating unto themselves, as it were, the sole Arbitrament over the Controversy of Cleves and juliers, they pretended to dispose of it at their pleasure; or else to usurp it themselves, and take the Country into their own possession. But these were but the lest complaints the Spaniards made; they complained much more upon the Archduke, and against the Truce made by him not many years before, to the so great prejudice of the affairs of Spain, as they did always generally think. That these were the egregious first-fruits which were gotten by the Truce: to wit, the loss of reputation (the soul of Empire) to the Crown of Spain; the Truce being made to the so much vilification thereof; and so many reformations being since made in the Army, with such exquisite parsimony, as if the Army were a private family, and the King, a Merchant, not a King; and the Province of Flanders, in the midst of Spain, & not environed on all sides by that Courts greatest enemies: that as soon as the Truce was concluded, the King of France had forthwith taken upon him the boldness, proudly to threaten Flanders with his Forces, and to bring it into those dangers, from which it could not otherwise have been freed, but by the almost manifest miracle of his sudden death; but that for all this, the French, the English, the United Provinces, and the Heretics of Germany had not laid aside their daring; since all of them, after having jointly assisted Brandenburg and Newburg forcibly to take entire possession of the States of Cleves and juliers it behooved Archduke Leopold shamefully to quit those parts: that the Heretics had since threatened Cullen; had taken away the government of Aquisgrane from the Catholics; Fortified Mulen in the face of Cullen; and had in divers other sorts insulted over the Catholics in those parts: and what wonder was it that such insolences should be done by them? since the Arms of Flanders, whilom the Terror of Heretics, were since the Truce grown so weak, as that they were become a scorn, and laughingstock among them; that if the maintaining of a flourishing Army in Flanders was too expensive, they might be limited elsewhere, to supply these more important Forces: that the Crown of Spain, was to reap Gold and Jewels from the Indieses; from other kingdoms ostentation, and a long series of Title; and soldiers and arms from Flanders, her magazine thereof. Thus did the Spaniards complain aloud and with military freedom; and truly it is not to be denied but that after the Truce, the affairs of Flanders were reduced to too great a diminution of Forces: the Catholic Army did not then exceed 8000 Foot and 1200 Horse, whereas the United Provinces did still maintain in theirs above 20000 Foot and 2500 Horse; to boot with the 4000 Foot and 200 Horse, all of them French, which were paid by the Crown of France: For though the Truce was judged necessary out of very many and weighty reasons; yet was there no reason why Flanders should be afterwards left so weak, as that its own weakness should invite the enemies of the Crown of Spain, and of the Catholic Religion, to new and rash designs: How greatly insolent the United Provinces were in possessing themselves of juliers, and how much prejudice did thereby ensue to the Provinces of Flanders, was sufficiently known by the Archduke, and by those Spanish officers, who next to him guided the Affairs of Flanders. He therefore resolved to sand speedy advertisement to the King of what the United Provinces had done, advising him not to endure it: He hinted for remedy, the taking up of Arms, as it was first agreed on, when they apprehended the like proceed, as hath been said; not intermitting howsoever the way of negotiating not only by the means of the Queen of France, but also of the King of England, by whose means it was to be endeavoured that the United Provinces should quit juliers, and should leave affairs in their former condition: and because it was necessary to recruit the Army lustily both with Foot and Horse, when there should be occasion of drawing it out into the field; the Archduke desired the King, that he would sand suddenly 400000 crowns into Flanders to this purpose: it cannot be said how strangely Spain was moved at this invasion of juliers: so as the Archduke's advice was presently approved of: and it was credibly believed that the moneys desired should be presently provided. The Archduke the mean while entered into divers negotiations: the United Provinces seemed to desire, that the Deputies of Brandenburg and Newburg, together with those of the Elector of Cullen, and their own should meet in Wessell, as also the ordinary Agents of France and England who were with the two Princes; to the end that they might see whither any better agreement then the former might be made by an amicable way between the two Princes. The Archduke therefore resolved to sand some one in his behalf likewise to Wessell, and to this purpose he chose the Count Octavius Viscount. Newburg in particular had pressed the Archduke very much to do this; but the conference at Wessell may be almost said to have been ended before it was begun: for the United Provinces, as if they would imperiously given laws to the negotiation, propounded, that Newburg should first put the affairs of Dosseldorp into their former condition, and that afterwards they would think upon some expedient for those of juliers, so as should be satisfactory to all parties, which Newburg denied to do, saying that in all reason the affairs of juliers and of Dosseldorp should be put into their former condition at one and the same time: So as Count Octavius hearing presently after his departure from Brussels, that the Treaty at Wessell was broken of, instead of going thither he went to Cleves, where the Elector of Brandenburg's son was: and mediated very much with him in the Archduke's name to bring him to agreement with Newburg; the answers he received were general: He then went to do the like with Newburg, who justified his actions by the violence of the contrary party: and because not many days before he had made public profession of the Catholic faith, he recommended his affairs with much efficacy to the Archduke, desiring him to interpose his authority that they might be taken into protection likewise by the King of Spain: the endeavours at Wessell proving vain, the Archduke renewed his former applications to the Queen of France, as also with the King of England, to the end that both of them might procure the United Provinces to forgo juliers; to the which the Queen seemed to be very willing, saying, she would sand some one of purpose to see some remedy taken; the King of England shown likewise the same intentions and readiness: But as Princes actions are usually full of jealousies; the Queen of France not appearing so forward, after many days in her performances, as she was in her promises, they grew suspicious of the proceed of the French: in fine 'twas doubted that the business of juliers was done either at first with their knowledge, or afterwards by their approbation: 'Twas considered what the United Provices had written to the Queen; that they would do nothing in this affair, before they had communicated it to the French: but the consideration was yet more weighty, that according to the nature of their government, so straight bound in correspondency with the two Crowns of France and England, it could not almost be possible that they should of themselves fall upon so bold an action. The French Ambassador at Brussels did notwithstanding constantly affirm, that the Queen knew nothing of the novelty of juliers, but that France was mightily displeased thereat; and that it was not to be doubted but that the Queen would found out some remedy for it; that she had forborn sending the forementioned Express into Holland, and to Treat with the two Princess, because she hoped for some good issue from the conference at Wessell; but that proving otherwise, they were now to expect what she had promised. This mean while some provision of moneys were heard of from Spain; two hundred thousand Crowns were sent at the present, and great hopes were given that the other 200000. should follow presently, and yet a greater sum; the Summer was already well advanced, neither was any news yet heard of the coming of any one from France, nor that there was any intention of sending any; so without any further expectation from France, the Archduke without any more delay, resolved to augment the Army, and to raise new men. He determined to raise 6000. Almains, and 7000. Walloons, and that a levy should be made throughout all the Provinces of Flanders of 1300. horse, distinguished into Curassiers, and Harqubusiers the ancient Soldiers were, as hath been said, about 8000. foot, and 1200. horse. The Archduke's resolution was, that being to march forth with the Army, all the old Militia should be drawn out, and so many of the new men as might make up a Body of 18000. foot, and of 2400. horse, and that the rest of the new men should remain to guard the Frontiers, and to supply the Garrisons. Newburg was very solicitous that the Army should be put together, for fear jest he might be driven out of Dosseldorp by the United Provinces. He also raised men, to do the which the Duke of Bavaria assisted him with moneys, and in secret the Catholic League, and after he had declared himself to be a Catholic, the Pope had likewise put on a resolution in Rome to assist him with moneys, which were to be contributed as his part in general to the same League in case of war; and to this purpose I used my best endeavours. The King of England seemed at that time to be again desirous to interpose in the accommodation of the affairs of juliers, and had destined to sand over Sir Henry Wotten extraordinary Ambassador into Holland to this purpose; and before he sent, he made this proposition by him: That in the first place juliers should be deposited into the hands of some that were Neuters: And for this he nominated three: Philip Prince of Orange, Maurice Lantsgrave of Hessen, and the Prince of Hennault▪ The first a Catholic, the last two Heretics. The Archduke would have agreed upon the first, but could not approve of the other two, because they depended too much upon the Heretic faction of Germany. But in France, were it either that they did not approve of the Proposition, or of the choice of the People, or that they would not given this advantage in the business to the King of England, no resolution at all was taken to insist upon this way; only the Queen continued to assure the Archduke, that she would suddenly sand some express into Holland, and that in the mean while she would not omit to use such means as were requisite by her Ambassador in Ordinary, to make the United Provinces quit juliers. In fine, all that the Queen Regent, or the King of England could effect by their Intercession, was no more but this; That the United Provinces did again declare, that they did not enter into juliers, to appropriate it to themselves, but to keep the two Princes from breaking forth into more dangerous disorders, that they were ready to leave it as soon as the two Princes should be agreed; not in the main cause, (which might prove a business of too great length) but in the point of possession, which might quickly be adjusted: that they believed this their Declaration would be approved of both in France and in England; and that they should be exceeding glad that by the means and Authority of the two Crowns such an agreement might be the sooner made. This Declaration of the United Provinces seemed very justifiable to the French Ambassador at Brussels; and that on the contrary the Archduke was too hot in his proceed, and in his resolving with the Spaniards to make so great a preparation of Arms. They affirmed that Businesses were not brought to a head or ripeness by violence, but by patience, that the United Provinces were naturally slow in their resolutions, by reason of their form of Government, which was composed of multitudes, that some one was suddenly to come from France for the accommodation of the affairs of juliers, which the Queen would use all possible means to effect. On the contrary, that Forces did provoke Forces; wherein Fortune did bear a much greater sway then counsel; that it was to be believed that the United Provinces would quickly be stirring with their Forces, when they should see the King of Spain and the Archduke begin to move with theirs, so as the one of them drawing up to hinder the others designs, what could the success prove, but that the Truce being broken through the default of the Archduke, and the Spaniards, a new war were to be begun in Flanders. He afterwards treated with the Archduke about this Declaration of the United Provinces, and did the best offices he could to suspend the taking up of Arms; but the Archduke was no ways satisfied with such a Declaration; but rather grew the more jealous; he thought that the United Provinces would spin out the business, that they might not quit juliers; and that the agreement touching possession between the two Princes, though severed from the principal cause, would be a business of very great length. Marquis Spinola had likewise the same suspicions, who was Camp-Master-Generall of the Catholic Army, and the Chief Minister of State that the King of Spain had in Flanders; he therefore still egged on the Archduke to raise men, and to take to the Field as soon as all necessaries could be had. So as the Archduke keeping constant to his former resolution, would not listen to what the French Ambassador could say, and to the English Agent (the Ambassador in Ordinary for England not being then at Brussels) who strengthened his reasons, by assuring him, that when the extraordinary Ambassador should come from his King into Holland, the Affairs of juliers would be accommodated; he answered in resolute terms, That he would not suspend his resolutions the space of one hour, till the United Provinces should have quitted juliers. The affairs of Spain were chiefly managed (as hath been said) by Marquis Spinola, and therefore he took upon him the care of raising new men, and of providing for all other things necessary. He was naturally very vigilant, and ever bend himself wholly to the affairs in hand, so as the new Foot and Horse were quickly raised, and provision taken for what else was necessary to put the Army together. Mastricht was designed for the rendezvous of the Army; a City situated with a stone bridge over the Mote towards the confines of the Country of juliers, and but eight hours good march distant from the Town of juliers: it was now about the beginning of August, and without any longer delay, the Army began to march towards Mastricht, with orders to be in that City by the twentieth of that month, and twelve piece of Cannon were sent thither. This mean while the United Provinces, when they seen these the Archdukes and King of Spain's proceed, had brought in 3000 Foot into juliers, so as with their men that were there before, 'twas judged that they had 4000 Foot in the Town and 300 Horse: they had likewise with great diligence fortified the Town, and provided it with victuals and warlike Ammunition; which were all of them signs that they would maintain it gallantly, in case the Catholic Army should draw up towards it: they had not as yet moved any other men, but stood only narrowly observing, which way the Catholic Army would take, that they might assemble themselves, and bend wither it was most fitting: But as for what enterprise the Catholic Army was to fall upon; (the true design being then kept very secret) the Governors of the United Provinces were not only doubtful, and generally all the Heretics, but even the very Court of Flanders were uncertain; to besiege juliers, which was the cause of the quarrel, 'twas thought it would be a difficult undertaking, the Town being so well provided of all things; and 'twas no question, but that the United Provinces would either endeavour to relieve it, or would make some other diversion on the side of Flanders: to boot that to go against the forces of those very Provinces, would be an absolute breach of Truce; to which it was known that the Archduke was utterly averse: and therefore there were but few that thought that the Army would turn towards juliers: others guessed more narrowly at what did indeed ensue; that the Catholic Army was either to march against Aquisgrane, & to take the government of that City from the Heretics, who had with violence bereft the Catholics of it; or else against the very Countries of juliers and Cleves, to possess themselves of some part thereof, and thus to counterpoise the former invasion of the United Provinces. The two last resolutions were both of them taken: and because the first was against Aquisgrane, it is requisite that taking my rise a little higher, I acquaint you briefly with the reason which moved the Archduke to undertake that enterprise. The City of Aquisgrane is subject to the Empire; and is numbered among one of the ancientest, and noblest of all Germany. The Catholic Religion did formerly flourish very much there, till in these later times the greatest part of her inhabitants fell into Luther's heresy, and many into that of Calvin. The government thereof kept still notwithstanding in the hands of Catholics; which according to the custom of the Free Towns of Germany, consists chief in a Magistracy, whereof two Burgomasters are the Heads: but lately in the year 1610. the Heretics rising with greater violence then formerly against the Catholics, they took the Magistracy from them, giving afterwards no respect to other new commands which come forth in favour of the Catholics: they were manifestly favoured in these their insolences, particularly by the United Provinces, and by the Prince Elector Palatine: by the United Provinces, that they might have that neighbouring City the more adherent to them; by the Prince Elector Palatine out of the same reason: for in the vacancy of the Emperor Rodolphus, he administ'ring that part wherein Aquisgane is, had confirmed the new heretical Magistracy in possession, and desired to see it so continued. The Emperor had made the Archduke Albertus, and the Elector of Cullen his Trusties to see these his last mandates executed; which they would gladly have done in an amicable way, and not by violence: divers endeavours and divers diligences were had to this purpose, but all in vain: for the heretics would not listen to reason, and they seemed not to fear Force: but growing every day more insolent, they had under various pretences brought a Garrison of 600 Dutch Foot into Aquisgrane, saying that they were Brandenburg's soldiers, when indeed they belonged to the United Provinces as most men thought. This was the condition of Aquisgrane at that time when the Catholic Army was marching towards their Rendezvous; at which conjuncture of time three Ambassadors from the three Ecclesiastical Electors come to Brussels to treat upon divers things which concerned the Catholic league of those parts. And because every one thought that they come chief for the affairs of juliers, this common belief was of great advantage to what the Catholic Army did afterwards undertake: as soon then as the Army was ready to march into the field, it come to Mastricht at the time appointed. The government thereof in the Archduke's absence belonged to the Marquess Spinola, so he together with the other chief Commanders met on the twentieth of August at the same place. I thought it might very well become me, after having done what belonged to my charge in the former negotiations, to be also upon this occasion in the camp, (and it was approved of at Rome that I should do so) judging that it would be a greater terror to the heretics, and more honourable for the Pope and the Catholic cause if that the Pope's Nuntio should be seen to be in that Army. The Marquis of Gualdalutz, who was Ambassador from the King of Spain in Flanders, resolved to be there likewise, and therefore both of us went together from Brussels, and accompanied Spinola afterwards: we were lodged all three together at Mastricht, where we stayed two days, till such time as the whole Army had past over the Mose; into our lodging come usually all the chief commanders of the Army; among which those of greatest esteem of the Spanish Nation, both for Nobility of blood and opinion of valour, were Don Luis de Velasco; Don Fernando Girone, and Don Inego di Borgia, and of the Dutch; Count Bucquoi, and Count Henry di Berg. Don Luis was General of the Horse, being come to that degree from being General of the Artillery, and had been for a long time Campmaster of the Infantry. Don Fernando had likewise for many years discharged the place of Campmaster, together with greater commands apart, and going afterwards into Spain, he was by the King made one of the supreme Council of War, and was returned again from that Court with great honour to the Army in Flanders. Don Inego di Borgia was then Campmaster also; and Governor of the Castle of Antwerp, which is the most important government, and of greatest trust which is given in Flanders: But he was chief commended for his singular skill in Fortification and Training, which are two so necessary points in Militia. Count Eucquoi was then General of the Artillery, who had first for many years been Campmaster of the Walloon Infantry; but being by reason of his known experience called some few years before to be governor of the Emperor's forces in Germany, he was not at that time in the Army. Count Henry di Berg was then likewise highly esteemed for his Soldiery, and specially for what concerned Horse, wherein he had had sundry chief Commands, and had always given proofs of better deserts. The rest of the Colonels and Camp-Masters of other Nations were all of them men of very good esteem in matter of war: But the Count Emden was in particular much valued among them: He was a Dutch Colonel, come of one of the chiefest Houses of that part of Germany which lies towards Flanders; and whose birth was always well accompanied with Valour. Diverse were the opinions, as hath been said, concerning the motion of the Catholic Forces: but it was not as yet known what resolution they would put on; so good is secrecy; and so religiously aught Princes to observe it. The unknown resolutions being now to be put in execution, and being to be made known by the very execution itself, Spinola thought it fitting to communicate the whole, first to the chief Commanders, and others of best respect, which he did thus by word of mouth. So many and so great (my most noble Companions) have the Insolences of the Heretics been, and the novelty of them in these parts, as it hath at last been requisite to remedy them by Force; and to begin with this last of juliers; what other greater could there be, or more rash? The United Provinces having had the boldness to Invade Neutral Countries; and to do that now in time of Truce, which was never done before in the heat of war: the great zeal, that is, the great care, which they show to have to the Public, hath made them enter juliers. ●ust such pretence as made them rebel against their Prince, and still perfidiously maintain the same rebellion. The King and Archduke are then justly incensed by such an action; to rescent the which, they have recruited their Army with new Soldiers, which Army is now met here at Mastricht; but before we fall upon the affairs of juliers, Aquisgrane being so near, we aught to turn our Forces against it, so to chastise the Heretics of that City, according to the Deputation which the Archduke and Elector of Cullen have thereof from the Emperor. It is sufficiently known to all men, how affrontedly, and with how much scorn to the Imperial Mandates, they have dared to usurp the Magistracy of that City, which was first in Catholic hands; so as in all reason, so unjust a violence must be redressed by a just Force: And this is that which aught first to be done: we will suddenly pass from thence to the throwing down of the Fortification of Mulen, which aught also to be done by the Archduke in the Emperor's Name. Since Brandenburg would never obey the Imperial Mandate procured by the City of Cullen to this end, we will at the same time enter the Country of Cleves and juliers, and possess ourselves of what we can there, as the United Provinces have done in the Town and Castle of juliers, and as they would have done in other parts, had they not been hindered by the marching of our Forces. Though in the similitude of success, the diversity of counsels will appear. For theirs would be, not to go any more out of juliers, whereas we shall be ready to restore all the places which we shall possess ourselves of, to necessitate the United Provinces to do the like, and leave the Affairs of those Countries in their former condition. These are for the present the Kings and the Archduke's resolutions, which I have thought good thus briefly to acquaint you with; and this the order which is therein to be observed. It now remains that we see what the effects will be; and we may believed that there will be no difficulty at all in them, only this present Expedition may prove displeasing unto us in this behalf, that we shall have the Keys of Aquisgrane presented us before they be demanded; and that for our pastime we shall see the Fortification of Mulen slighted; and all the rest of our endeavours follow. All which things will prove but sport and pastime; we having formerly been want to march with the enemy on our Flank; and to place and finish our sieges with the enemy in our face. We shall not now march with any Forces to withstand us; and say that the United Provinces shall move after us, (as it may be believed they will) shall we not have gained so much time, as our principal designs shall not possibly meet with any disturbance? So as having such advantage over our enemies, the United Provinces and Brandenburg will be forced to suffer the controverted Countries to return into their first condition. They will be enforced hereafter to abstain from Novelties and Usurpations: and lastly, the controversy concerning that Country will of necessity (as it is just it should) be ended by the ordinary way of the Empire's Tribunal. Fraud is not always favoured by justice; but the perfidious are often times punished by their own perfidiousness. Thus by securing our Catholic neighbours, we shall likewise tender our own Princes safety the more secure; and thus the world by this new occurrency shall see, that the King and Archduke do never move their Forces, but when necessitated either by just defence to maintain their own, or to free others from unjust oppression. Spinola spoke thus; and his discourse was suddenly by the Commanders spread abroad among the Soldiers, who were all very much joyed thereat. Spinola went from Mastricht on the 22. of August, and was the same day in the Army; wherein, in all were 2500. Spaniards with 800. Irish, under three Camp-Masters, which were Don Inico di Borgia, Simon Autanes, and Don john di Menestis: 3000. Dutch, under their Colonel, the Count of Embden: 1700. Burgonians under the Baron of Balanson their Campmaster: and 9000. Walloons under three Camp-Masters, the Count Ostrat, the Signior della Moteria, and the Signior di Golesin. These were all Foot, wherein was wanting a Brigado of 2000 Italian Foot, under the Campmaster Marcillo del Giadice, who were lodged near the Rhine, and who had orders not to stir, it being intended that they should be set on work in those parts. To this purpose 7. Companies of Horse were likewise left there about's; and 18 other Companies come to Mastricht. The Camp then consisted of 18000 Foot, and 2500. Horse, with 12. pieces of Cannon, besides the Italiar Foot, and 700. Horse, which come all to their rendezvous the said day in a large field, between Mastricht and Aquisgrane, where the Parado was made. A stately sight in truth, and worthy to be frequently seen, i● the Forces which Christians so often turn against themselves, were more jointly turned against the enemies to the Name of Christ. The Army moved from the rendezvous in this order, towards Aquisgrane. Dor Lewis di Falasco, General of the Horse, marched before the Foot with 600. Horse, the Foot followed after in four Bodies, one after another. In the first were the Spanish Foot, with four piece of Artillery in their Front. In the second, the Dutch and Burgonians jointly. In the third 6000. Walloons with the rest of the Artillery; and in the last, the other 3000. Walloons; after which come 600. Horse, which closed up the Army in the rear. The other 600. Horse were go with Bartholomew Sanchius, Lieutenant General of the Horse, before the Army moved, to possess a Pass whereby they might hinder the succour which perchance might be sent from juliers to the Heretics of Aquisgrane; which City is not above four easy hours march from juliers; but no succour was sent them neither from thence nor yet from any other part. There was not above two hours march from the rendezvous to Aquisgrane; so as the same day all the Army was quartered about it. Aquisgrane is a City of a large circuit, and lies almost wholly in a plain, save that in one part the earth rises. It is environed with a Wall of ancient structure not any ways fortified. In the upper side it is commanded by certain little Hills, within a musket shot of the Walls, so as the Cann●● may at pleasure play upon the houses. It was generally thought that there being no more Soldiers there but those 600. Foot, which I spoke of before▪ and the people not being accustomed to Arms, the City Gates would be suddenly thrown open: But the Heretics continuing their contumacy, & being fomented in particular by one of the Burgomasters, who had been a chief Instrument of the violence used to the Catholics; they would first hear what Propositions should be made unto them, by the Elector of Cullen, and the Archduke's Deputies; who entering the next morning into the City, they acquainted them with what Commission their Princes had from the Emperor, and desired that it might be effected. The Magistracy took time to Answer, and deferred to given their Answer longer then they should have done. Spinola wondered at this delay, so as he sent Count Henry de Berg into the City, to exhort the Magistracy presently to obey, for otherwise their Cannon should forthwith make entrance for them; and to make his threats the more terrible, he gave present order for the planting of some pieces upon one of those Hills which did most command the City. At last at three day's end the Heretics were reduced to obedience, and sent forth the 600. Foot which they had within, so as the government was quickly put into the hands of Catholics. And to secure the Catholic party, which was fare inferior to the Heretical, a Garrison of 1200. Dutch, of the Count Emdens' Regiment were left in Aquisgrane. The Heretics feared jest the City should have been sacked by the Army: But Spinola had strict command from the Archduke at his departure from Brussels, not to suffer any such thing to be done. So as neither did the Soldiers enter the Town, nor did any other disorder ensue. At this time, after so long delay, it was at last resolved in France, that Monsieur di Rifugie one of the chiefest Councillors of that Court should be sent into Holland: But upon the Armies meeting at the rendezvous. The English Ambassador was already arrived in Holland, and by the English Agent in Brussels, did forthwith very much press the Archduke, that he would 'cause the further proceeding of Arms to cease, giving assured hopes that the United Provinces would accept of the Proposition made by his King of depositing juliers into Neutral hands: To which the Archduke would by no means consent. Soon after the United Provinces declared that they did accept of the King of England's Proposition; and that for the manner of doing it, they would refer themselves to the Ambassadors of France and of England, who were then with them: the English Agent did therefore with much fervency urge his former desire; and the French Ambassador joined with him therein: but the Archduke being encouraged by the success at Aquisgrane, answered them; that he desired the depositing might first be done; and that he would then presently stop the further proceeding of the Army: otherwise that he would never consent thereunto upon bore promises; so as without any further loss of time, Spinola after he had reduced the affairs of Aquisgrane according to his desire, entered presently into the Country of juliers; and marched with his Army against the Town of Duren, which is one of the chiefest of that Country: Those of the Town received in a Garrison of 600 Dutch, without any contradiction, as did some other Towns of small importance neare Duren: at which time the Italians had possessed themselves of Orsoi; a place of important situation upon the Rhine: and they had already begun to throw a bridge of boats over the same River, at Remburg. Spinola marched that way, and in few days march brought the Army thither; and whilst the Army were upon their march, he went on the other side the Rhine to make a visit to the Duke of Newburg (the Palatine was now called Duke, his Father being just then dead) and his duchess, who were then at Dosseldorp: at the same time, the fortification at Mulen was thrown down without any obstacle, to the great joy of those of Cullen. The Catholic Army passed the River at Remburg, and turned suddenly upon Wessell, a Town which lies a little lower upon the same River: in former times the City of Wessell was comprised under the Dukedom of Cleves; but for many years of late, licentiousness increasing with heresy, it become almost wholly free, and was governed as are the Hans Towns of Germany; so as since then they have acknowledged the Dukes of Cleves rather as their protectors then as their Princes. The Inhabitants are almost all Calvinists, and therefore have chief combined with the heretics of those parts, who profess the same sect, and particularly with the United Provinces: from whom they have received most encouragement both by their Forces, and by the neighbourhood of their frontiers: the seat of Wessell is exceeding considerable, for on the one side it commands the Rhine, and on the other the Lippa, a River which falls into the Rhine: The Town is of a good circuit, and sufficiently fortified on one side; full of Inhabitants, given much to traffic, and so abounding in all things as it furnishes the neighbouring parts with all necessaries. The inhabitants of Wessell were much astonished, and affrighted when they seen the Army draw neare it; they did not expect that the Flanders forces would reflect upon them, for they persuaded themselves, that their Town should be dealt withal likewise as Newtral, and as one of the Hans Towns of Germany. They had therefore formerly refused to receive a garrison offered them by the United Provinces; who having gathered many of their men together upon those frontieres', and when the Catholic Army drew neare unto it, had offered to secure Wessell, yea, and if need should be, to take openly upon them their protection: and doubtesly if Wessell had taken in any garrison of the United Provinces, Spinola would never have accosted it: for his orders from the Archduke were, not to wage war with any of the forces of the United Provinces, nor to given no occasion of the breach of Truce. The Catholic Army did soon begirt the Town on all sides, which seeming at first to make some resistance, and having made many shot out of the Town and killed some of the Catholic Army, forced Spinola to open his Trenches, and plant his battery on the suburbs side: which when they began to play, the inhabitants finding they were not able to defend themselves, and that all succour was excluded from them, they resolved at the end of four days to yield upon some conditions; the chief article whereof was, that when the United Provinces should restore the Town and Castle of juliers, the Town of Wessell should likewise be restored to its former condition Spinola advanced not further with his Army: his men were already too much diminished by reason of many garrisons which he had placed in sundry parts, and was still placing on both sides of the Rhine, so as he would not place any as he might have done in Emerick and Res, two good Towns upon the Rhine, and neare Wessell: whereupon Count Maurice losing no opportunity, and having with him 14000 Foot and 3000 Horse in the neighbouring parts, suddenly possessed himself of those two Towns, and afterwards of many other lesser ones in the same controverted Countries, on each side the Rhine: He had likewise received strict commission from the United Provinces not to meddle with the King of Spain's nor the Archduke's Forces, to the end that all occasion of the breach of Truce might be likewise shunned on their sides; so as it was very observable that in these move or Forces, the Soldiers of the one Army did not hinder the others proceed, but often times met one with another and proceeded friendly together; and he who come first took first possession without any manner of disturbance. Spinola took up his quarters neare Wessel, and Count Maurice his neare Res, within two hours march one of another; and the Duke of Newburg and his men which were 4000 Foot and 400 Horse, joined with Spinola, as did also seven hundred of Brandenburg's Horse, and a Regiment of Foot of the Prince Elector Palatine with Maurice. It cannot be said what commotion the taking of Wessell caused in France, in England, in Germany, and among all the heretics; for fear jest the Spaniards out of various pretences might appropriate unto themselves a purchase of such concernment. Monsieur De Refuge was this mean while come to Brussels, and going immediately with the Lieger French Ambassador to Gaunt, where the Archduke and the Infanta his Wife, then were; the first proposition which he made was, that a suspension of Arms might be had on all sides, to the which the Archduke answered, that he might go to Holland, and make the motion first there. Refuge before his departure would have had the Archduke promise' to given way thereunto on his side, but could not get him so to do: yet the Archduke shown some good inclinations thereunto, & told Refuge, that he should be glad such a Treaty for suspension of Arms might be had, as had already been motioned between Spinola and Maurice; which did not take effect by reason of divers difficulties that were therein met withal; nor was there any further talk of suspension: wherhfore as soon as Refuge was go from Gaunt and come to Holland, he and the English Ambassador were of opinion, that the readiest way to reconcile the two Princes was, that they two Ambassadors should go to the Armies, and endeavour that a conference between deputies might be had in some fitting place thereabouts, by whose means the desired accommodation might be had. To this purpose Refuge and Wotton went to the Armies, and having spoken with Brandenburg and Newburg, with Spinola and Maurice, they agreed upon a conference in Santen, a Town within the Dukedom of Cleves, neare the Rhine, but on the contrary side, and almost equally distant from the one and the other Camp, Here met Refuge on the behalf of the King of France, and the French Ambassador who was resident in Holland; Wotton and the English Lieger Ambassador resident in Holland likewise, on the behalf of the King of England; Pietro Pecquio Chancellor of Brabant, and the Counsellor Wiscer for the Archduke; Three Deputies for the Elector of Cullen; Seven for the seven United Provinces; Two for the Elector Palatine; the which two did likewise represent the Union of all the heretic League of Germany: Three for Brandenburg, and three for Newburg. The conference began in the beginning of October: The chief drift of the French and English Ambassadors, and the heretics Deputies was, that this new agreement should relate to the former, which by procurement of the late King of France, of the King of England, of the United Provinces, and of the other Princes of the heretical League of Germany ensued between the Duke of Brandenburg and Duke of Newburg, as was shown at first: and therefore those Ambassadors and Deputies began to proceed jointly in the conference, leaving out the Deputies of the Elector of Cullen, and of the Archduke: yet Refuge and Wotton acquainted these others with all that was done, and endeavoured, in all other demeanour to appear, as Mediators, not as parties; their chiefest diffidence was notwithstanding in the Archduke's deputies, out of the aim they had that when this new agreement should be made, it might not be acknowledged as from the Authority of the King of Spain and of the Archduke. These were the jealousies which were had at the beginning of the conference: it was not doubted by any of the Ambassadors or Deputies, but that the too great communion in all things to which the two Princes were necessitated by the former agreement had been the chief cause of dissension between them; therefore care was had in this new agreement which was in Treaty, to make such a division as each of them should enjoy severally half of the pretended states; and that except it were their Titles and some other things of common use, they should in all the rest be wholly divided one from another: one of the chief difficulties lay in the Town of juliers, because that being munited by a good Castle, 'twas thought that Town might be advantageous to him to whose share it should fall: it was therefore propounded that the Castle should be dismantled on the side towards the Town; or else that juliers should remain in the hands of the United Provinces, and Wessell in the Archduke's hand, and both of these to be restored when the differences should be decided between the two Princes: and as for the main division, it was propounded, that one of the two Princes should divide, and the other should choose; or else that each of them should possess his several half for six months, and then change halves for other six months, and that this course should be still continued: As concerning the dismantling of juliers, the Embasdours of France and England, together with the Deputies of the United Provinces, and other heretics, inclined more to this proposal then to leave that Town in possession of the United Provinces, to the end that Wessell might not remain in the King of Spain, and Archdukes hands: and for what concerned the main division, Newburg would have willingly accepted of the first proposal, which certainly was the justest, and likeliest to endure: but Brandenburg seemed to be more inclined to the second, to which the Deputies of the United Provinces did likewise stick very closely. To say truth, such a bargain appeared very strange, for it might easily be foreseen, what confusion it would bring with it: it was long disputed between the Ambassadors and Deputies upon this point; and the chiefest contention was between Refuge and Pecchi●: who because he had been Ambassador in ordinary from the Archduke, in in France, and knew how much the French did favour the United Provinces, did therefore oppose Refuge stiffly when occasion served: at last the opiniatrecy of Brandenburg, and of the United Provinces was such, as they drew over the Ambassadors to prefer the second proposal of alternate possession, before the first of each Princes contenting himself with the half of the state apart. Spinola did presently acquaint the Archduke herewith, to whom for this purpose he sent the Count Octavio Viscount, when being sent a little before into Spain, was now returned with a new supply of 300000 crowns, and was come to the Army to treat with Spinola. The Archduke desired very much to see the two Princes accorded; that Arms should be laid down, and that all danger of breaking the Truce might cease; the which was greatly likewise desired in Spain, as Viscount related: but on the other side the Archduke was much averse to the second proposal, thinking that by it the accommodation would not last long; and that by this means the discord between the two Princes would rather be deferred then ended. The Spanish ministers of state were likewise very averse thereunto, and of all the rest the Ambassador did much press the Archduke, that the King might be fully advertised, & that his will might be known, before the businesses in treaty should be fully concluded: The Archduke's resolution hereupon was, to sand Viscount back again to the Army with directions to Spinola, to endeavour that the conference might be drawn out in length as long as possibly he could, that he might have time to advice thereof first in Spain; which if it could not be done, he then left it to him to do upon the place what time and necessity should counsel: and because this was not better then to leave him a large liberty to agreed; the Spaniards stormed cruelly, and chief that Wessells should be restored, and so great a purchase be lost which neither cost money, blood, nor expense of time, without the King's knowledge: whereupon the Ambassador resolved to dispatch away a messenger speedily to Spain, and writ thus by him to the King. How much the getting of Wessell concerns your Majesty's affairs in Flanders, the sorrow of your enemies do sufficiently manifest: they are much displeased to see your Majesty's Ensigns in the most important seat of the whole Rhine; and that that should be your Majesty's magazine of Arms in Flanders, which you may at any time upon any occurrence draw from thence and remove wither your Majesty's own occasions, or those of your Queens, which are never severed from yours, shall most require in these parts: then since there cannot be a greater purchase, great consideration aught to be had before your Majesty deprive yourself of it. The Archduke, and some other of your Majesty's ministers of state, fear that if Wessell be not suddenly restored, the Truce with the United Provinces will break: and I and many other of my opinion believe that they will rather the more willingly continued it, out of hopes they may get Wessell from you by way of Treaty; for they see 'tis vain to think of getting it by force, and that then the Truce would be broken with much more advantage to your Majesty then to them: But if Wessell be restored, and that be done which is so much desired by the United Provinces, and by your Majesty's greatest enemies; what security can there be had that the Provinces themselves will not endeavour the same invasion? is not the example of juliers' fresh in memory? and of how much greater importance will this be unto them then that? juliers is not seated upon their Frontiers; whereas Wessell lies upon their principal Ports: Will your Majesty know the true and right intentions of themselves, and of their friends: They have embraced (as your Majesty shall understand by another Letter of my) as the final agreement between Brandenburg and Newburg, an overture, whence confusion, and not quiet is to be expected between them; not peace in those parts, but greater troubles then before: nor do they this with any other intention, but that the United Provinces may have better opportunity hereafter, to effect that to their own advantage in the future troubles, which they have so shamefully dared to do in the past troubles: yet for all this I am not against the surrendering of Wessell, when it may stand with other more important respects: but I would have it to be done, as also the agreement at Santen to be concluded, when your Majesty shall be fully acquainted with the whole proceed, and when they shall have your consent thereunto, and not before. All times will serve for losses, but not for acquisitions: nay, when occasion is not laid hold of, she escapes, and often times faces about and proves adverse: those happy successes which have ensued, are chief due to your Majesty's most glorious Forces. And now that Justice and Fortune seem to contend which of them shall favour them most; your Majesty will certainly so husband this propitiousness, as that your wont wisdom may likewise therein be admired. These were the contents of the Letter; but before Viscounts return to the Army, it being every day more clearly seen what disorders would arise from the point of alternate possession, another way was found out, and finally concluded, which was: that as equal a division as might be, being made of the controverted states, and the lots being cast, he of the two Princes should choose first, whose Lot should be first drawn: and because they had already agreed upon the other less considerable points, they come at last to agreed the whole capitulation; the substance whereof was this: that the Soldiers which were introduced into whatsoever part of the said Countries should immediately be drawn from thence: that the two Princes should engage themselves, not to put any Town of the said Countries into any whatsoever third hand; that all Fortifications made by either-side since May last should be demolished; that all those who were either go out, or driven out of those Countries, should be restored to their goods, offices and benefices: that all the innovations which had been made either in the Church or state, should be reordered: that the two Princes should reside each of them severally in the division that should fall unto him; provided that the said Countries should be thus divided: To wit, the Dukedom of Cleves, the Countries of Marca, and of Ravensburg, the Lordship of Ravesten, and some other Lordships and feudatories in Brabant, and in Flanders, on the one part; and on the other, the Dukedoms of juliers, and of Berg, with all their dependencies. That each of the Princes should have that part of those dominions, which should fall to his share by casting lots: and that each of them should govern their proportion in the common name: that the offices and benefices of the said Countries should be bestowed by those two Princes, being disposed of Alternately each of them their month about, accordingly as they should fall; and that the public revenues should be equally divided between them. All which things the Princes were to engage themselves by promise, and in the word of a Prince to keep inviolably. These Articles were subscribed by the Ambassadors of France and England, by the deputies of the Elector Palatine of Rhine, and by those of the United Provinces; all which bound their Kings, Princes, and Superiors to see the agreement made good; and this was subscribed only by the Ambassadors and above said Deputies, because as I have said, they pretended that the present agreement should have relation to the former, which was made by the two Princes by the authority and intercession of the same Crowns, and the prenominated Heretic Potentates. Brandenburg, and Newburg did afterwards subscribe and ratify the capitulation, and obliged themselves to observe them: The agreement being thus concluded, the first Article which was to be put in execution, was to draw the Armies out of those Countries: 'Twas thought necessary that the removing them from thence should be done with such cautiousness, as there should be no occasion of future levying of Forces, through any such novelties as had before happened: Whereupon a treaty was had between Spinola and Count Maurice, whereby each of them should oblige themselves expressly in writing to bring in no more forces in time to come, nor to endeavour any invasion in those Countries; which writing was afterwards to be ratified by the King of Spain and the Archduke on the one side, and by the United Provinces on the other side; but there arose presently divers difficulties about the form of the words. Spinola desired the declaration might be free and absolute; Maurice would have it only refer to the agreement at Santen; which Spinola thought not convenient, because the Archduke's Deputies were not suffered to subscribe unto the agreement: some days were spent about the form of this Declaration: and the Ambassadors laboured very much to contrive it so as it might satisfy all parties, but still the difficulties grew the greater, the more they strove to overcome them. 'twas now December, and the Ambassadors growing weary of these new delays which arose in the execution of the Agreement, resolved to be go: when the messenger who was sent to Madrid by the Spanish Ambassador who was at Brussels, returned from thence to the Catholic Camp, who brought peremptory commission that the agreement at Santen should not be fully concluded, without the King's privity, and that in the mean while Wessell should not be restored, and that the state of affairs should continued in their present condition; at this man's arrival there was a stay made of all things. The Ambassadors much incensed, would tarry not longer, but departed suddenly for Holland: and the other Deputies returned to their own homes. Maurice distributed his Army into divers parts; and Spinola did the like: leaving 3000 Foot in Wessell, part Spaniards, part Walloons, and 300 Horse, with a Fort on their flank on the other side of the Rhine. Spinola returned afterwards to Brussels, wither Duke Newburg resolved likewise to come, to thank the Archduke for the favours he had received from him, and to speak with him at nearer distance of his affairs: a little before the conclusion of the Treaty at Santen, Count Zalleren was come to the Catholic Camp, who was sent from the Emperor to the Archduke to endeavour that the agreement might not be concluded any ways to the prejudice of the Imperial Authority or Interest: Mathias would have had it ordered so, as that the controverted Countries of Cleves and juliers, might rest in him by way of sequestration, till the main cause should be decided: And he likewise desired that no agreement might in any means be made between Brandenburg and Newburg, to the prejudice of the Duke of Saxony. Count Zoleren pressed very much upon these two points. He come afterwards to Brussels, at the same time that Newburg resolved to go thither, and did in person renew his desires with the Archduke so much the more, for that he had the fit occasion to do so, by reason that the affairs between Brandenb●rg and Newburg were at a stay. When Newburg and Spinola were come to Brussels, the Archduke desirous fully to justify in Spain whatsoever had been done on his behalf, gave a particular account unto the King of all that was treated on, and concluded at Santen, and of the difficulties which arose afterwards between Maurice and Spinola about the withdrawing of their Forces, all that he added was rather to show his resenting what the Ambassador had written, to justify what he himself had done. Your Majesties (said he) may then haply comprehend that it was not possible to hinder the agreement, since the issue thereof depended upon those who did subscribe it. The resolution of entering upon, and of restoring, was at first taken, as your Majesty very well knows by your knowledge and consent, nor can the particular promise be denied, which was made to restore Wessell when juliers should be● restored. And who can doubt but that to go against it, will produc● great jealousies in France, in England, in the United Provinces, and in all the rest of the Heretical League in Germany? and that all those that are interressed will not by all means possible endeavour the execution thereof? suspicions do not always end in suspicions: But the fire o● public evils beginning thus to creep, doth at last break forth into high flames of Troubles. In brief, whither will your Majesty have the Truce continued, and have Wessell restored; or will you have it broken, which may easily be done by keeping possession of Wessell? I cannot think your Majesty can so fare undervalue those reasons which induced you to lay down Arms, as that you will be now induced to reassume them without apparent necessity. For what concerns us, I do not found our affairs much bettered yet: nor do I esteem the acquisition of Wessell to be of so great Importance, as that for it Flanders be to be again involved in a more bitter war then was the former. This restitution is particularly due to the Tribunal of public Faith, and those actions may be esteemed very advantageous which by the sole end of Justice, shall also compass the end of profit May your Majesty be pleased to consider the good success that we have had. How well are the affairs of Aquisgrane, and Mulen settled? How well are the Duke of Newburgs' affairs restablisht? and the Catholic cause, which must always be equally the Austrian cause, remains in all other points, in much better condition hereabouts then doth the Heretical Faction. We must then make good use of these successes; which doth not lie in going about immaturely to achieve greater. Fortune is variable; she is go when we lest think on't, and hugs herself when she makes the greatest of Mortals the greatest laughing stocks. The Archduke wrote concisely thus unto the King; and exhorted him with much efficacy, that he would given way to the things as they, were agitated and concluded. It was two months before any answer come from the King, who would well weigh the resolution which was to be taken in so important an affair. And at last his answer was this; That the agreement at Santen should be put in execution, that Wessell, and all the other places possessed should be restored, when the United Provinces should do the like; with such security, as there should be no more cause of fear, of their making hereafter any new invasion in the Countries of Cleves and juliers. As soon as this answer was come, the Duke of Newburg went from Brussels to Germany, to take possession of his Patrimonial estate: and as for the execution of what was concluded on in Santen he left the disposal thereof, and of his interest there●in freely to the Archduke. He had stayed about some two months in Brussels, in which time he ofttimes discoursed at large, with me about his affairs: and seemed to be much bound to the Pope, who had so affectionately assisted him; and in all other things shown such wisdom and piety, as the winning of such a Prince, at that time over to the Catholic cause, particularly in Germany, was to be really esteemed a great purchase to the universal cause of the Church. Divers negotiations were at this time had between him and Count Zoleren; Zoleren would have had him to have cast himself freely upon the Emperor's Judgement in the cause of the controverted states; and that he should have received the Elector of Saxony for his companion in the possession of those Countries, that so he might the easier drive out Brandenburg, who openly declared his con●umacy against the Emperor. Newburg seemed willing to submit himself to the Imperial Judgement, but upon condition that his present affairs might not be impaired by the uncertainty of future hopes. The Archduke had received full Authority from the Emperor to agreed those motions made by Zoleren; but he thought it fitting to see first what the issue of the agreement at Santen would be: wherhfore though Newburg went away, Zoleren stayed at Brussels; and the Archduke began suddenly after the resolution was come from Spain, to set on foot the endeavouring a promise of not introducing any Forces for the future, under whatsoever pretence into the controverted Countries of Cleves and juliers, not between Spinola and Maurice, but between himself and the United Provinces. Many months were herein consumed with much prolixity; for the negotiation proceeded very slowly, which was to be managed by Letters, sometime● by the way of France, sometimes by the way of England, sometimes by the way of Holland. Many were the difficulties, noon of which could ever be overcome. That which pleased one party, raised jealousy in the other. The United Provinces following Count Maurice his first sense, would that this promise should have reference to the agreement at Santen: and the Archduke seconded therein by Spinola, said that was not fitting to be done. They discoursed of referring this promise to the two Kings of France and of England, without any mention of the agreement at Santen, but hereunto did the Count Zoleren oppose himself, pretending that they should first address themselves to the Emperor. Thus amid these contestations, and other pertinacious niceties of words, all Treaties finally ceased; and Count Zoleren, after having tarried six months at Brussels, returned likewise towards Germany: This mean while the Spanish Forces remain in the states of Cleves and juliers on the one side, and on the other those of the United Provinces: and it is to be believed they may tarry there a good while: as far as the exterior Title goes, Brandenburg and Newburg enjoy and do possess the government: but in states he who hath the power, hath the possession: and petty Princes may learn by this new example, not easily to call in greater Potentates to their assistance. The Relation of the Flight of HENRY of BURBONE Prince of CONDE, from France: First Prince of the Blood. And of what happened till his return to PARIS. FRANCE did enjoy Peace and Quiet in an high degree in the latter years of the reign of Henry the fourth, An. 1609. one of the greatest and most memorable Kings that that Kingdom ever had: when unexpectedly about the end of the year 1609. there arose a sad accident, which presently disordered all things, and ended at last in the King's death. Henry had won great glory in War so long, as being first an Heretic, and then a Catholic, he was compelled to use his Forces against his Domestic and Foreign Enemies, who withstood his access to that Crown; which when he was arrived at, and had laid down his arms both at home and abroad, he afterwards purchased no less glory by making France flourish for many years in great peace and prosperity; so that his praise was noised over the whole world; and 'twas generally held, that of a long time there had not been a King of a clearer renown and who was better parted for government either in Peace or War: His fame seemed only to be a little clouded by his having appeared to be, and by his being still too much given to the pleasures of love; so as he might be said to be therein a rival to Alexander, and Caesar; as well as he was to both of them in unvanquished military valour: he was married to Mary of Medicis, a Princess very virtuous, beautiful, and fruitful: yet this so straight a tie could not suffice to bridle this his domineering passion: but commonly glutted with that delight which he enjoyed without contest, he did not forbear to contract new loves, and to pass from one to another according as he met with new objects to kindle new desires. A little before his death there appeared at Court a rare beauty, who had drawn upon her all the eyes of the Court, and those of the King more then all the rest. This beautiful Lady was Margaret of Memerancy, daughter to the Constable of France. The King from first likings grew so passionately to love her, as not able to conceal his flame, it broke forth in many outward demonstrations, till every body took notice of it. The Prince of Conde was cousin to the King; who in his youth being born and bred up an heretic, did afterwards embrace the Catholic Faith: and because noon other of the blood royal was so neare a kin unto the King, all the Parliaments of France had acknowledged Conde as lawful successor to the Crown, before the King had married his second wife and had children by her. The King having made sure his own succession, Conde remained first Prince of the blood: A place of great prerogative in France, and which bore great consequences with it: they began already to think of a wife for him, and the aforenamed Margaret, the Constable's daughter was judged to be fittest consort for him. Conde was then about 22 years old, and he was not ignorant of the King's new affection: but thinking his marrying of Margaret would be a sufficient remedy to make the King bridle his passion, the marriage proceeded, and the wedding was solemnly celebrated; but he soon found he was deceived. The greater the obstacles grew on Margaret's behalf, the greater grew the King's heat: He for a while concealed his fire, which growing the more intense by being kept in, it at last broke forth into high towering flames. Finding he was not longer able to make resistance, he went about by divers means and practices to compass his desires: Conde watched him; and being full of thoughts, he at last imagined that the best means to save his honour was to remove his wife from the Court; whereupon he carried her to a house of his some leagues distant from Paris towards Picardy: when the King knew this, he was highly moved; hatred was suddenly joined unto his love; so as first under colourable pretences, and afterwards by down right threats he made Conde be told, who come often by starts to Paris, that he should do well to bring his wife to Court: and in the mean time not being able to bear with her absence any longer, he (as it was commonly reported) disguised, & accompanied but by a few, one day rid many leagues to see her in a certain place where she was to hunt, Conde feigned to be willing to do what the King desired, and to this end seemed as if he went to fetch his wife, but with a firm resolution in secret, to carry her out of France: nor was he long in doing it. All things necessary being prepared for his flight rather then for his departure; he and his wife with two of her women went into a Coach of eight horses, and being followed only by three or four of his most trusty servants, and some pacing horses he went unexpectedly towards the Frontiers of Flanders on the side of Artoise, which was the nearest part of those Countries: when the Coach-horses were tired; he and his wife got upon the pacing geldings. The hazard of his honour did not only add wings to Conde's haste, but even the hazard of his life, which the King's anger called to his mind; so as he never stayed till he come to Landresie, a considerable Town on the Frontiers of Artoise, where he thought he might with safety tarry a while: he suddenly sent a Gentleman of his from thence, to acquaint Archduke Albertus with what had befallen him, who was then for his recreation at Marimonte, with the Infanta his wife: a place situated towards the Frontiers of France; and desired that he might have leave to come unto him himself in person. The Archduke feared jest the King of France might be hereat offended, so as in civil terms he refused to receive him: and also let him understand that he would not suffer him to tarry within his territories, through the which he might notwithstanding freely pass, if he would go unto any other part. Conde not being suffered to tarry in the Archduke's states, went presently to juliers, where then the Archduke Leopold was, being sent thither by the Emperor, about the differences that happened about the succession of the Dukedom of Cleves, the Duke whereof was dead without children: from hence he passed to Cullen, and had from thence according to the ancient freedom of the Imperial Towns, a safe conduct to bring him thither. This was the occasion, and this the success of the Prince of Conde's flight. But the King of France understanding the Prince of Conde's resolution, and being very much incensed against him, gave forth many orders immediately that he should be followed with all possible speed, and taken: he was not only mad to see the Princess so far removed from Court, but for that he knew this action of the Prince, might occasion many dangerous novelties to his Kingdom, his own great age considered, and the tender years of his children. The King agitated by so fierce and potent passions, had used all diligence that Conde might be overtaken, and detained: among others he had dispatched away Monsieur du Pralin, one of the Captains of his guard, with orders, that if he could not reach him, he should forthwith go to the Archduke, towards whose Frontiers 'twas imagined he was go: and that he should use all the means he could to make him be detained. Pralin, and all the others, failing in their hopes of overtaking him; Pralin accompanied with the French Ambassador then at Brussels, went to acquaint the Archduke with the King's desires: they made many complaints against the Prince, and spoke bitter things; they said: That his suspicions of any danger to his wife's honour, were false and feigned; as were also all other fears by which he seemed to cloak his flying from France; saying, how could he expect any violence from the King? a Prince no ways given thereunto, and who was not likely to use it to his cousin: that it was rather his ambition and ligeretie, instigated by bad advice, which had made him take so strange and so unexpected a resolution: which could tend to nothing else but to disturb France with some novelty plotted to this end: that therefore the King did promise unto himself out of his neighbourhood, and always professed friendship to the Archduke, that he would 'cause Conde be detained, in case he should be in Flanders; and that he would by all means facilitate his return to France: that they did both of them entreat this favour from him in their King's name with much earnestness: that he should consider what the event of this might be: and lastly, that he should remember, that such encounters were never so appropriated to one only Prince, but that their example might reach unto others. The Archduke's answer was, That he conceived he had fulfilled his part to the King, by his not receiving the Prince: that it had not been just to deny a Prince of his condition, passage through his Country: that he was already go elsewhere; but that if by any intercession of his he could persuade him to return for France, he was ready to do it, and to show how much he desired the King's satisfaction in particular, and the public peace of his Kingdom. The Prince of Orange was at this time in his Town of Breda, not far from Antwerp, with the Princess his wife, who was sister to Conde: he therefore come with his wife presently to Brussels being by Conde desired so to do; who that he might go the sooner to Cullen took a nearer way, and had caused the Princess his wife to come to Brussels, that she might entertain herself there with her sister till some other resolution were taken. The Princess of Conde was then 16 years old; and her beauty was judged by all men to be answerable to the forerunning fame thereof: she was very fair; her eyes full of sweetness, very becoming in her speech, and in all her gestures; she owed all the commendations of her beauty naturally to its self, for she did not help it with any womanly art: Soon after the Archduke and the Infanta returned to Brussels; the Archduke did immediately visit her, and the Infanta made her many courteous offers: in this interim of time, the chief state ministers of Spain, who had not been with the Archduke at Merimonte, had heard what had past between him and the Prince of Conde there. They thought the Archduke had done ignobly in not suffering the Prince to tarry in Flanders, and in seeming so willing to satisfy the King of France: but Spinola seemed chief to be hereat scandalised, who did manage the Spanish affairs in Flanders, principally: He could not endure that the Archduke should let slip so fair an occasion of making some advantage of the King of France his troubles. He said: That the Archduke had no reason to fear that the King of France would have taken up Arms against him for permitting Conde to live in safety in Flanders: that to fight in open field with armed Troops, was no other matter then to fall on Stags in a Forest, as that King knew better then all others. 'Twas therefore to be thought that rather then to break into open war, he would have endeavoured to have regained Conde into France, and to have regained some hopes of his Mistress by Treaty: nay, it was rather to be believed that if Conde had been protected in Flanders, the endeavour of his reconciliation might have produced many advantageous effects, as well in facilitating the interchangeable match between the two Crowns, whereof divers overtures had already been made, as in many other respects which might concern their good, and jointly the good of all Christendom: that suspicion had its power even among Princes, and did often times prevail with them more then friendship; but that in whatsoever manner the Prince of Conde should have been detained in the Catholic Kings and Archduke's hands, there could not have been a fairer nor a fit occasion wished for whereby to bridle the King of France his immoderate desires: that he had made himself Arbitrator of the Truce lately made in Flanders; that the differences touching the succession of the House of Cleves did at this time depend upon his Arbitrement; that he would take upon him the title of being the general Arbitrator of Europe, and exercise the Authority thereof: and what authority was less tolerable then to impede so great and so just Princes as were the King of Spain and the Archduke from the just privilege of protecting the oppressed? especially such a one as the Prince of Conde? oppressed by such a one as he? whereas he, since the last peace made with the Catholic King, had given Protection in France to Anthony Peres, an officer who had been very unfaithful to the Crown of Spain; and had not only protected him, but given him a stipend, and did him all possible honour even in the face of his Court: of how different a quality was Conde? How different his cause? and how could he better justify his flying from France? which (let the King say what he pleased) was occasioned out of mere necessity of saving his honour, and of securing his very life. Marquis Spinola, together with all the rest of the Spanish officers broke forth into such like complaints as these; and not herewithal content, they endeavoured by all means they could to imprint the same sense in the Archduke, who was a very moderate Prince; and who having not many months before wrestled through many difficulties, in the Truce of Flanders to purchase peace, would not given occasion of beginning a new and more heavy war with the King of France: but on the other side the Archduke's interest did so depend upon the King of Spain's concernments, as he at last suffered himself to be persuaded by the aforenamed reasons: Conde was then invited to come to Brussels by an express messenger sent by Marquis Spinola, with letters from himself and from the Catholic Ambassador; and the pretence was this: Villeroy, chief Secretary of state to the King of France, had told the Ambassador of Flanders woe was resident at Paris, that the King was very much offended, that Pralin, and his Ambassador resident at Brussels, could not be permitted to see Conde, to given him such advice as was fitting, and whereby he might peradventure have been persuaded to have returned to France. The King himself afterwards told the Ambassador as much, declaring that he would have been very well pleased if Conde might have been made to return. The Archduke hereupon pretending to 'cause Conde to come, to the end that the French ministers of State might speak with him, and endeavour an accommodation between him and the King, offering himself to be ready to do the like, he gave way that Conde should be invited to come to Brussels in manner aforesaid; where he arrived about the end of December 1609. He lighted at the Prince of Orange his house, and was accompanied by the Catholic Ambassador, and by all the chief Lords of the Court, when he made his first address to the Archduke and the Infanta, who received him with much civility, & with such honour as his quality required. This meanwhile the Answer which was expected concerning his person, was come from Spain; which was this: That he might be permitted to live safely in Flanders, that the King took him into his protection, and that he should enjoy it with all favourable advantages. At his first coming to Brussels there was no discourse at all had of his reconciliation with the King of France; for the King's Ambassador had not as yet had any particular Commission concerning it, to boot that it was thought the King would sand an Extraordinary Ambassador about it. But Conde encouraged by the Answer from Spain, sought so much the more to justify his coming from France, he gave two Letters particularly to me; the one of which he writ to the Pope, the other to Cardinal Burghese, the Pope's Nephew. The contents of them were: That moved thereunto out of the danger of his life and honour, he was enforced to flee from France, and that he recommended his affairs to the Pope's protection, and the Cardinal's Mediation. It was thought that he really had just occasion to forgo France; but for what he said touching the violence prepared to be used against him by the King, and that his life was in danger, it was not generally credited. For every one knew that the King never dealt in his love affairs, but by usual ways: and among all his virtues he was famous for noon more then his clemency. I sent away the Letters; but I did not omit to tell him what become me, both for his, and for the public good. I had first likewise done such offices with the Archduke, and the Spanish State Ministers tending to concord and peace, as I thought fittest upon such an occurrence; which I did afterwards often reiterate▪ by particular orders from the Pope. I found the Archduke much disposed to work an accommodation, between the Prince and the King; and he seemed to hope to effect it; Judging among other reasons, that Conde out of the natural facility of the Truth, would be as easily persuaded to return to France, as he was to come from thence. The Spanish Statesmen seemed likewise very desirous to accommodate Conde: But it was known that neither they nor the Archduke would be displeased, if the Treaty might meet with some difficulty; in such a manner notwithstanding, as that the King of France might thereby be involved in some domestic troubles, and that the affairs abroad might not break out into open war. As for the form of the accommodation, Conde declared publicly that he would never trust himself integrally and freely in the King's hands. He propounded, that to the end his abode in France might be voided of all danger, the King might assign unto him some particular Town in Guiena, (of which Province he was Governor) which might be farthest distant from Paris, and the nearest that might be to the Frontiers of Spain. He afterwards altered his opinion, and was afraid of any condition which might oblige him to tarry in France. He spoke of retiring himself into some neutral Town of Germany, or Italy: he seemed as if he would go into Spain; and finally he pitched upon no certain course: Such doubts and such confusions appeared to him in whatsoever settlement. But the King of France his thoughts were much otherwise. He would that the Prince of Conde should remit himself freely into his hands: being first assured that he would forgive him all his faults. The King resolved to sand the Marquis de la Coure, one of the valiantest and most esteemed Subjects of all France, to the Archduke, to propound this accommodation. When the Marquis was come to Brussels, he in his first Audience, exaggerated what good turns the King had done unto the Prince and then fell mightily to blame Condees actions, and largely to justify those of the Kings. He told the Archduke. That the only way to work Condees accommodation, was for him to return into France, and to put himself wholly into the King's hands; who would not only sincerely pardon him, but in all benign manner receive him, and restore him to his former favour: That he therefore desired the Archduke to persuade Conde thereunto; which if he should seem averse unto, the King would believed for certain, that the Archduke had made him leave France; since he had suffered him to return to Flanders, out of an intention only of bringing him by his means to an easier accommodation with the King. This was the first passage between la Coure and the Archduke. To which he at the first was answered but in generals; yet full of efficacious offers, whereby the Archduke did again promise' to do what he could to bring Conde to an accommodation. But lafoy Coure said in more direct terms to others, that the Prince was received into Flanders upon express condition, that in case his affairs should not be agreed with the King, he was to be made to go from thence by the Archduke, and that this was no more then what the Ambassador of Flanders had told the King at Paris. He afterwards spoke of this condition openly to the Archduke; who denied it, and said: that he had made Conde return into Flanders merely to afford the French ministers of State means to Treat with him, and to endeavour his reconciliation with the King, as he himself would likewise have done without making any condition. The Archduke wondered to hear the French speak after this manner; and thought it not less strange to be desired by la Coure, in the King's name, that if Conde should be made to quit Flanders, his wife should notwithstanding be detained there, and should be sent back to the Constable her Father, and to Madame d' Angulesme her Aunt, by whom the Princess was brought up after her Mother's death, who had left her very young. But the meaning of this was soon discerned: Wherhfore the Archduke and the Infanta did constantly withstand it; answering that they would never dispose of the Princess otherwise then as the Prince her Husband should please. During this time many overtures were made touching Condees affairs, and the Prince of Orange, his brother in law laboured particularly therein. At last, Conde seemed to be content to withdraw himself into some neutral City either in Germany, or Italy, provided he might enjoy the entertainment he received in France, which was 40000 Crowns a year. But lafoy Coure stood more firm then ever to his former proposition, and said; That the King was not to capitulate with any of his Vassals, nor to consent that the Prince of Conde should prescribe laws unto him. That therefore he should do well to return to France, and to put himself into the King's hands, which if he would do, he might be sure never to hear of any thing that was past. He said moreover, that Condees living in Germany or in Italy, were to leave him dependant upon the Spaniard. What occasions would they thereby take to nourish his unquietness? Would not this be to leave him as it were deposited among them, whereby to trouble the King now, or France▪ when the King should be dead? That therefore the King would neither live with these suspicions, nor leave such occasion of trouble to his Kingdom when he should be dead. That he was resolved to know, and that suddenly what would become of Conde; and that if it should appear the Spaniards would make use of him to those ends, the King had determined to prevent those evils which should be prepared against France, by making Spain first sensible of the like, as much as in him lay. The Marquis de la Coure mixed these threats among his friendly mediations: He was of himself highly spirited, and full of warlike thoughts, which were mightily supplied in him, by the great height and reputation which the King of France was then in. ●ut Conde would by no means hear of returning into France. He thought not any whatsoever security safe for him to escape out of the King's hands. ●f he should once come within them. Orange was likewise of the same opinion: who to make the French persuade the King to be content with the proposition of the Prince his Brother in laws, abiding in some neutral Town of Germany, or Italy, shown that it would be much better to do so, then by making the Prince despair, necessitate him consequently to throw himself wholly upon the Spaniards. But it was impossible to make the French move any such thing to the King. They yielded only that the Archduke might do it by his Ambassador; who found great repugnancy in the King, and that he would never condescend thereunto, nor ever accept of any thing, but the Prince his putting himself freely into the King's hands. The which the Prince was as resolute not to do. This was the public Negotiation: But the French laboured at the same time, much more in another secret affair; which was, that they might found some means how to steal away the Princess privately, and carry her into France. A strange undertaking, and certainly very hard to compass: but notwithstanding it was generally noised, and believed in Flanders. And I, affirming nothing for certain, will only say what the public fame in that point was; which proves notwithstanding a false witness in human affairs; and often times feigns malignant inventions, and makes them be too easily believed by malignant hearers. There appeared but little love between the Prince and Princess; were it either by reason of the difference of their natures, or because she was not well pleased to be brought out of France: or that peradventure there wanted not some who thinking to please the King, endeavoured to keep them at odds. Wherhfore without any delay, as soon as la Coure was come to Brussels, the Princess was secretly set upon in private, to suffer herself to be conveyed away into France. She was much in suspense, to hear of such a proposal on the one side, she was not much satisfied with the Prince: she abhorred to be in the Spaniards hands; she was not well pleased with the Court of Flanders, as too much differing from that of France: she mightily desired to be with her Father and Aunt, who by very kind Letters appeared to desire the like. But on the other side, to part thus with her Husband; to suffer herself to be stolen away in secret; to go away with so much danger of being brought back: and to expose the success thereof to such variety of judgement as would be thereby soon occasioned, were all of them reasons which might make her very unresolute what to do. After having a while wavered between these ambiguities; overcome at last by her still increasing desire of returning to France, she consented to suffer herself to be carried thither, out of her Fathers and her Aunts often instigations, and pressing her to return to Paris. The design of the French was, to steal her by night privately out of Brussels, and to advance so fare towards the nearest confines of France, as when they should be discovered they could not be overtaken. But many things were to be prepared before they could execute this their design. They must either scale the walls of the City, or make holes thorough it: they must have pacing Horses in Brussels, and in sundry stages between it and France, to set the Princess on; and at the same stages have horsemen who might oppose such as should come from Brussels to stay her. There was therefore many difficulties in the business; and great foresight was to be had to prevent them; so as it was impossible it should be carried so secretly, but that it must be smelled. Count Buckquoye was the first that discovered it, General of the Artillery in Flanders, who suddenly acquainted the Archduke and Spinola with it. And taking into consideration what course was best to be taken to frustrate the design; it was thought fittest, without making of any noise, under some colour, or other to bring the Princess into the Palace to be near the Infanta. The Archduke and Spanish Officers took their pretence from those dislikes which were observed between her and the Prince her Husband, and carried the business so, as that the Prince himself should make the motion. To the which he was easily persuaded; having a short promise both from the Archduke and the Infanta, not to suffer his wife to departed from them without his knowledge. It was thought the Princess herself would be content to be with the Infanta; as well out of the little satisfaction she seemed to receive in the Prince her Husband's company; as out of hope that when her Husband should be go, she might the easilier obtain her liberty, and return to France. Out of these hopes she was content to be brought near the Infanta, till she seen what the event would be of the Prince his business. The Marquis de la Coure was likewise herewith content; but did not notwithstanding forgo his plot of stealing the Princess out of Flanders. He seen that if this business had been well handled, it might soon have been done, and would have been a great shame to the Spaniards, and a lively resentment of that distaste which his King had taken against them. Whereas it would be a hard matter to get the Princess out of the Palace when she should once be there. This was the crafty proceeding of the one and the other party, each hoping to delude the other. The day was now at hand wherein the Princess was to be received into the Palace, and the French were not yet in readiness to effect their design: So as to gain some delay of time they had recourse to this remedy. They thought (though they were therein deceived) that Marquis Spinola was in love with the Princess: among other things she danced admirably well, and took much delight therein, wherhfore they made her pray Spinola to prevail so far with the Archduke and the Prince her husband, as that her coming to live in the Palace might be put of for three or four days: feigning that she very much desired first to see an entertainment and mask which was to be made in the Prince of Orange his house, and where Spinola's self was to bring the music, as the custom of France and Flanders is: but Spinola perceived the concealed cunning, and in as handsome terms as might be, made it so difficult a business, as the Princess grew out of all hope of procuring the mentioned delay. The French were troubled at this answer; but it withheld them not from their design: it was on a Sabbath day the 13 of February, the year 1610. and the next Lord's day 'twas thought for certain that the Princess was to come to the Palace: whereupon the French ordering their affairs the best they could, resolved however to venture upon the business that very night: and jest the Prince by lying with her (though he did so but very seldom) might disturb the plot, they made her sergeant to be sick the night before. The French Ambassadors Lady, who was of the plot, kept still by her: Lafoy Coure likewise, and the French Ambassador were not long absent from her; and all of them stood longing that the day might pass over, which preceded the desired hour of the succeeding night. This mean while Count Buckquoi advertised the Archduke how all things passed: Conde knew not as yet of any thing that hath been said; for the Archduke hoping that the plot would fall of its self by the Princess her coming to the Palace, had not acquainted him with it, that he might not afford him any occasion of divulging it, and consequently of irritating the King of France with further distastes: but seeing affairs thus far advanced, he thought it good that Spinola should communicate the whole business to Conde, as he did: and counselled him to desire the Archduke that he would set a certain number of his own horse-guard▪ that night to guard the Prince of Orange his house▪ Conde was amazed to hear of this, and forthwith went to the Archduke, who gave speedy order for the desired guard: Conde entering hereupon into new suspicions, it is not to be said how much he was troubled: and not able to contain himself, he was not well come from the Archduke, when he began to divulge it in the outer rooms; so as it was suddenly known every where; he did not speak, he rather exclaimed against the King; against la Coure, and the French Ambassador in ordinary; taking on, and afflicting himself as if his wife had already been taken away; and as if she were already at Paris. The news was by this time come to the Princess her chamber, where la Coure was together with the French Ambassador, and divers other Frenchmen; the trouble which they were all in, to hear this, was no less then what appeared in Conde when he was in the Palace; since they seen the plot was discovered; the present advice was to deny it if need should be, and by complaining, to prevent complaints; wherewith la Coure and the Ambassador in ordinary went instantly from the Prince of Orange his house, leaving the Princess much perplexed: to whom Conde being returned, and having laid aside his former fear, he together with Orange and the Spanish officers seemed to lay all the blame upon the French, and that they had treacherously plotted to convey away the Princess by violence: it cannot be said what concourse of people flocked presently to Orange his house: and what confusion and noise there was that night in Brussels: the guard which the Archduke had granted unto Conde, come armed into Orange his house: and 500 more armed Townsmen which Orange had procured from the supreme Magistrate of the City; so as the horror of so many arms increased by that of the night, together with the novelty of the business itself, brought almost all the rest of the people thither, and bred one of the greatest tumults that was ever known in Brussels: and 'twas given out by a popular voice, and believed, that the King of France was himself in person at the City gates to carry away the Princess by force. But to return to la Coure, and the Ambassador in ordinary, as soon as they were go from Orange his house, and seen so great a tumult, they resolved to go immediately to the Archduke, and to complain mightily of him concerning what was divulged, of the above said plot. They said: That all was invented by the Prince of Conde, the more still to honest his flying from France, and for other ambitious ends of his own: that it might easily be conceived the Princess could not be conveyed away to France in the air; so as to effect her carrying away many horsemen, must of necessity have been laid by the way between Brussels and the confines of France: she must necessarily be conveyed out of a house, full of company: the walls of the City must either have been scaled, or had holes made through them; and many other things must have been provided for; and above all things impenetrable secrecy; which preparations if they should have been made, how should not the news thereof been brought to Brussels, as well of the people that must have been sent from France, as of some of the so many provisions which must have been made? how was it to be believed that the Princess, a Lady of tender years, so tenderly brought up, could travel two long days journey from Brussels, to the nearest parts of France, so speedily as she should not be overtaken? that by all these reasons it did clearly appear, that the business was not only not ever plotted, but never dreamt of, which was to be imagined totally infeasable: that fraud abhors the light; and that therefore this was composed by night, the better to mask it over with darkness: that Conde was the Architect thereof, assisted by some Officer of Flanders, ill-minded towards France: and since by this calumnious invention, the Princess was so much scandalised in her honour, and their King's reputation so much at stake, they desired the Archduke that the truth might be made to appear, to the end that proportionable resentment might be had. The Archduke's answer was. That he had thought such a plot to be very unlikely; but that on the other side Conde was very confident in his affirming it to be true; that he had been so earnest in desiring to have a Guard in the Prince of Orange his house, as he could not deny it him; that he was sorry to see businesses proceed to this height; that he hoped the truth of the fact would at last be made manifest; and that it would not prove any cause of spot unto the Princess, nor of offence unto the King. The Archduke, with such a feigned answer dispatched away the Ambassadors, who continuing their complaints, dispersed them every where abroad; especially against Marquis Spinola, upon whose advice they seen Conde did very much rely in all things. The common opinion was, that the French had really an intention to carry away the Princess in manner aforesaid; and though the doing it would have proved very difficult, yet was it not held to be impossible. Her chamber lay upon a garden near the street; the City wall might easily have been bored thorough, or else been scaled; and so they might have passed over the ditch, which was dry on that side, without any difficulty; so as the Princess being advanced 6. or 7. hours by night, on good and swift Horses, there would have been but little hope of overtaking her: in which time one Post being sent after another, such a number of Horse would have suddenly been sent forth from the nearest Frontiers of France, as might have sufficed to withstand any Forces which might have come from Brussels to stop the Princess. These were the reasons which made for the Spaniards side, to prove that she might be stolen away. But whatsoever the truth was in a business which amid such contrary passions could hardly be found out. The Princess was brought the very next day into the Palace, attended by a very great many. As joyful as this day appeared to the Spaniards, it seemed as sad to the French; who thought that the Princess was brought as a Prisoner, and as in Triumph; and the King of France his passions taken and led captive after her. Many Posts were forthwith dispatched away to the King, to given him notice of all these proceed: whereat the King being strangely exasperated, thinking that no more negotiations were now to be had in Condees affairs, but that it was better to affright him with threats, he writ him a Letter of credence to believed what la Coure should say unto him. The which as soon as la Coure had given him, he told him in succinct and resolute terms. That the King to show his goodness to him, did again propound unto him his return to France, and the putting of himself freely into his hands; that he assured him again of a plenary pardon for all that was past; if he did not suddenly accept of this offer, the King did from that time forward declare him guilty of High-Treason; for that he contrary to the laws of France had dared to go out of the Kingdom without the King's permission, and had so many other ways offended the King, contrary to the laws of consanguinity. Conde took time to answer, and his answer was: That he had left France to save his honour and his life; and that necessity quit him of any fault: that he was ready to return if any offer should be made him whereby he might live there in safety; that he would live and die faithful to the King. But that when the King should stray from all the ways of justice, and should proceed against him by the ways of Violence, he took all such acts as should be done against his person to be Null, and Invalid. All things being thus much imbittered; the Prince of Conde growing more jealous of his life, if he should stay in Brussels, a place much frequented by Foreigners, and too near France, resolved to quit Flanders. He had his choice of two ways to go; either towards Spain by Sea, taking ship at Dunkirk, or towards Italy, by the way of Germany: both these were full of difficulties. In that of the sea, he must rely upon the winds, which might peradventure either throw his ship upon Holland, or England, or upon France itself: and it was not less dangerous to given upon Holland or England, by reason of the near correspondency that was between France and them. And in his passage by land, he ran● many more dangers; being to pass thorough so many, and so differen● Countries, in many whereof Conde could in no ways be safe. All doubts being weighed, it was at last resolved that he should go by Germany into Italy, and should tarry at Milan, with Count Fuentes, who was Governor of that Town then, till some other course should be taken in Spain touching his affairs. He took his journey about the end of February▪ and all care was had for his departure with what secrecy might be; his journey succeeded so well, as in a few days he come to Milan, where he was honourably received by Count Fuentes. Marquis de la Coure tarried not long after he was go: Lafoy Cours Embassy proving vain, and Conde being absolutely past into the Spaniards hands, every bodies eyes were upon what the King of France would do; no man doubted but that he was mightily vexed, and might think, Was this the fruit of his past victories? that a young man, the next of kin unto him, who aught to be at his beck, should in this manner, and upon these pretences, forgo France, and put himself into the Spaniards protection? become the means of disturbing his present quiet, and the peace which he desired to leave his children to enjoy? What accident could be a greater blemish to his honour, and more lessen his Authority then this? Against which why should he not now think that others in France might to the like, and that his enemies abroad might rise against him? that Kingdoms were preserved by reputation; which was as well their strongest support in peace, as their chiefest safety in time of war. When once they grow despised, they are either subject to foreign Invasions, or home Troubles; and many times to both at once. 'Twas therefore now not longer time to loiter; and since Conde would not be entreated to return to France, he must now be forced to do it; and be made repent his having committed so great faults, and the Spaniards their having assisted him therein. These passions seemed to be plainly read in the King's countenance; and no less visible was his desire of having the Princess back again at Paris. So as so great and potent an agitation of mind being considered, many thought he would maker war upon Flanders, and have the United Provinces joined with him; and that the Archduke and Spaniards, would through fear be for●'d at last to restore Conde & the Princess unto him, which they had denied to do by a friendly way. But on the other side the graver and wiser sort of men could not be thus persuaded: They judged that the King of France, being now 58 years old would first very well weigh the dangers, which might ensue by his making a War at those years; and having so young children, the eldest of which was not past nine years old. How sad times (said they) will those prove, wherein he himself failing, shall leave his heir in so tender years, to inherit a War? under the government of a woman? all things being doubtful abroad and wavering at home? had not he been so forward in endeavouring the Truce of Flanders, that he might see his neighbours at peace when he should die? what piece of folly and of blindness would it then be, to make the War now his own, which he had striven to quench among others? 'twas not to be esteemed an easy matter to set upon, and to endanger the Provinces of Flanders; Provinces provided of a veteran Army; fortified on the Frontiers by strong Towns, and by Rivers: inhabited by a warlike people, and naturally enemies to the very name of France: that it was not so likely neither, as some would persuade themselves, that the United Provinces would join in the same designs with the King, since the same ends which made them desire the Truce, would make them likewise desire the continuance of it: that the violentest passions were commonly soon over: 'twas therefore to be believed, that when the King should be free of these his so ardent desires, he would given ear to more circumspect advice, and endeavour rather to work an accommodation in Conde's affairs by way of good correspondency with the Spaniards. It would indeed be a gallant and a memorable action, if the King violently go in love now in his old age, should set all France on fire, and put all Europe in commotion for a woman. Thus did men discourse of the King of France, when Conde was go from Flanders: and doubtlessly it was the common opinion that these later reasons would have outweighed the former; but men found themselves often times deceived even when they think themselves wisest. When God hath once decreed in his secret wisdom, that some great alteration shall hap among us here below for our punishment, he first of all bereaves Princes of counsel; and suffering them to fall from the love of the weal public, or common good, into the like of their own blind private wills, he makes themselves the instruments as well of their own peculiar rvine, as of the general misfortune of other men. Thus the more ardent resolutions prevailing over the wisest in the King of France, he resolved to raise a new Army, and took for his pretence, that he would assist the Elector of Brandenburg, and the Palatine of Newburg in their possession of the states of Cleves and juliers. The Emperor Rodolphus, as I touched upon at the beginning, had sent the Archduke Leopold the year before to juliers; to the end that he might take those states into sequestration in the Emperor's name, which as depending upon the Empire, the Emperor judged that of right they should be deposited in his hands, till the cause was juridically decided. Leopold stayed therefore in juliers; a good Town and strengthened by a good Castle; and for that he feared to be driven out from thence by the aforesaid two Princes, who were openly favoured by the United Previnces, he had raised some number of Soldiers from the time that he first entered into the Town. He being a Prince of the house of Austria, a gallant young man, having begun to raise men, and his possibility of being favoured by the forces of Flanders, were reasons which raised jealousies not only in Brandenburg and in Newburg, but even in the United Provinces, and in the King of France, that his coming thither was not without the knowledge and counsel of the Spaniards: They seemed to apprehended jest the Spaniards under the Emperor's name, might cover some of their own designs which might prove either to put Leopold in possession of the states of the late Duke of Cleves, or under some pretence to enter thereinto themselves: Whereupon the King and the United Provinces had resolved the next spring to assist Brandenburg and Newburg, and to drive Leopold not only out of juliers, but out of all those parts. The affairs of juliers were at this pass when the Prince of Conde went from Flanders to Italy: The King of France thought better therefore to make use of this pretence to raise an Army, then by openly intimating War to the King of Spain and the Archduke, afford them opportunity to provide by time, and the easilier to resist his forces, which at that time were very great; his large Kingdom was then in full peace, and therefore abounded wonderfully in all things; and the glory he had won in War, had got him so great a power in peace, as 'tIS not known that every any King had more. The Nobility▪ Parliaments, and all the other Orders strove who should be most at his beck; and that which was most to be wondered at was, that it was not well known wither he were more beloved or feared by his subjects: and the French being by nature quick, and the Gentry generally given to Arms, it might be believed, that the King would found as much readiness in them to take up Arms as he could desire: he made no delay; he sent forthwith many Commissions into divers Countries to raise men, to provide Ammunition, victuals and what else was necessary to make up a potent Army. France was in a short time full of armed men, and all things were ready for motion: to boot with the soldiery which were raised in France, the King gave order for raising a good number of Swissers: And out of his Treasury, (which was thought to contain above five Million of gold, and was not as yet touched) great quantity of money was drawn to make the speedier provisions. But the Archduke and Spinola held that the King of France had some other end in these his preparations: they thought that by these threats the King would the more enforce his practices, which he still continued in Brussels of re-having the Princess; and that losing all hope at last of regaining her, he would reduce so great a preparation, to so many men only as should be needful to sand to the succour of Brandenburg and Newburg; in prosecution of the aforesaid practice, Monsieur de Preau was newly come from France in the name of the Constable, and Madam d' Angulesme: but he brought with him likewise Letters from the King to the Archduke of such eager contents, as he was rather taken to be sent from the King himself then from the Constable and Madam d Angulesme: These were his desires to the Archduke; That the Queen of France her Coronation being shortly to be solemnised, the Constable and Madam d Angulesme desired that the Princess might be at it to serve the Queen upon this so solemn occasion herself in person; that they did both of them likewise desire to have the Princess with them to assist her in endeavouring a divorce between her and her husband, who had carried her out of France against her will; offended her highly at Brussels; placed her by force with the Infanta; and deprived her of that liberty which by all laws was allowed to every private woman, in case of divorce, much more to so eminent a Princess. These were the principal reasons alleged by Preau, to persuade the Archduke and the Infanta to permit the Princess to return to France. Answer was made, that the Princess come into their Palace of her own accord; that the Prince her husband had placed her there, and la Coure himself had agreed thereunto: That though she were with them, the divorce and all things conducing thereunto might be treated of; and finally that they had engaged their word unto her husband not to deliver her up into any one's hands but his own; so as it did not consist with their honour to falsify their promise. Preau replied, that the Archduke and Infanta could not do it, because it was against all Laws of justice: that the rule of all Laws and Tribunals was, that the wife who was evilly entreated by her husband, should have free liberty to be parted from him, and to go wither she pleased to sue out her Divorce: that he did believe the Princess should not want this liberty though she tarried with the Infanta; but that she herself did desire rather to be with her Father and Aunt, and in her own friends hands, that so she might the better govern her affairs; that this could not be denied her; and lastly, that the King of France would never endure, as long as he had any Forces to command, that she should receive so open an outrage. The Archduke excused himself chief upon his tie of Honour, and desired that some way of accommodation might be thought on; that if any way could be found out whereby with safety to his and his wives honour, the Princess might return to France, he would willingly accept of it; but the French would admit of nothing, but that the Princess should be freely restored to her Father and her Aunt; and pressed the Archduke the more hereunto, for that they found him wavering: The Archduke was at last contented, to make it be propounded to the French, that when it should be declared by any competent way that the Princess should be wholly left to her own liberty, he and the Infanta would be contented to let her go wither she pleased; by these words, [competent way] the Archduke seemed to understand the Pope: who should determine this point either by himself at Rome, or by either of his Nuntios in France, or in Flanders: which would suddenly be decided one way or other; since this was not to enter upon the merits of the cause of Divorce, but only to resolve where the Princess should in the mean while be: yet would not the French admit of this neither; they doubted the length of time; and they considered the Archduke as one in a manner not at his own command, the Spaniards having too great an interest in all his affairs and counsels; and particularly the Marquis Spinola, whom they did very much distrust. But it was now time for the Archduke and Spinolasts to think of somewhat else then treaty by words; The Swissers began already to fall down into France; and all provisions formerly spoken of with all diligence prepared. The flour of the Nobility of France could not be more forward to take up Arms and follow the King's person; who though he sometimes varied in publishing the form of his going, was still resolute to go. He told the Ambassadors of Spain and Flanders, that he would go himself in person to assist his friends, and to put them into their due possession of the states of Cleves and juliers: upon other occasions, he would let himself be freely understood, that he would go himself to free the Princess out of Prison: and to revenge the wrong which the King of Spain and Archduke had done him in taking the Prince of Conde into their protection. The Archduke was advertised of all this, by his own Ambassador resident at Paris, and by the King of Spain's Ambassador. He therefore thought it no longer time to delay making such provisions as was thought necessary to oppose the King of France, if he should really resolve to turn his Forces upon Flanders. His Army was at this time very much diminished; for presently after the Truce all the Dutch were cashiered, many of the Walloons, and a great part of the Horse: which was done to lessen the expense, which had been so excessive in so long a War: so as the King of Spain and the Archduke had not then above 10000 Foot and 1500 Horse; all of them notwithstanding old and expert soldiers: The scarcity of money was likewise very great; so as the Archduke and Spaniards were in a great strength, being of necessity to raise 12000 Foot, and 2000 Horse; and having no money to do it. The Archdukes first resolution was to sand Don Fernando Girone into Spain, one of the chief Spanish Commanders in all the Army, to persuade the King to sand 400000 Crowns immediately into Flanders, whereby to raise the aforesaid Forces, and for other Provisions which were to be made, against the King of France his preparations; and in the mean while, with such moneys as could be come by, they began to raisemen. 'Twas resolved that there should 6000 Dutch be raised, 6000 Walloons, and for the present only 600 Harquebuziers on Horseback, which sort of Horse they wanted, all their other Horse being either Lancers or Curaziers; the Archduke's intention was to make use of all the old soldiers in the field, and to set the new men to guard the Frontiers; which because they required good Garrisons both towards France, and towards the United Provinces; 'twas thought that the Spanish field Army could not exceed 12 or 14 thousand Foot, and 2500 Horse; as for the King of Fance his Army, 'twas esteemed to be, 30000 Foot, part Swissers and part French, and 5000 Horse: The Royal Cornet being therein comprehended, which in France is called the White Cornet, which the flower of the French Nobility use to bring up behind when the King himself is in person in the Field: affairs were hastened every day more and more on the King's side, and great store of Victuals, Ammunition for War and Artillery began to be sent to those Frontiers of Campagnie and Piccardy which lay towards Flanders: and the Town of Schallone was designed for the Rendezvous of the French Army. This was the state of affairs in the end of April, 1610. at which time the same King, to boot with the preparation of his own Forces, held straight Intelligence with the King of England, and the United Provinces, to make them likewise move against Flanders. He was of great Authority with the United Provinces, and maintained at his own cost 4000 French Foot, and 200. Horse in their Army; so as he thought to draw them easily over to side with his designs; and to induce the King of England thereunto also out of hopes of gaining something thereby himself. And not content with these managements of affairs against Flanders, he stirred up others in Italy by the Duke of Savoy (who was then greatly alienated from the Spaniards) and the Commonwealth of Venice to make some commotion on that side also against the State of Milan. But his ends in Italy ended not here. He thought that the very occasion of so many Forces on foot at once against the King of Spain, might invite the Pope to think upon the Kingdom of Naples; and to incite also all others on all sides▪ who were jealous of so great a power, to endeavour to bring it lower. Neither did he despair of carrying his victorious Forces in this conjuncture, into Germany, and to found his name in so great renown there also, and such the correspondency of his Friends, as that he might take the Empire from the House of Austria. So was he set on at the same time by hatred against the Prince, and love to the Princess; but especially by the fiercest of Enemies, the too great Felicity which he found himself to be in. But his chiefest design at this time was upon Flanders; and the whole body of his Forces met upon the Frontiers: So as the Archduke and the Spaniards began very much to fear the Affairs of Flanders; doubting jest by so many and so hotly pursued practices against the Crown of Spain, the Forces of that Monarchy might be diverted elsewhere, so as not to be able well to supply the particular needs of Flanders. To which it was also to be added, that Spain was at this time in great commotion, by reason of the expulsion of the Moors out of all the King of Spain's Kingdoms. The Archduke and the Spaniards did notwithstanding hope, that the United Provinces (whose Forces were very considerable) would not be brought, without any necessity of their own, to break the Truce, but they would only assist the King with some of their men, which would notwithstanding be a reinforcement of great Importance, by reason of the condition of their Soldiery, which was very choice, and long Versed in Arms. As for the King of England, they thought they needed not fear him at all, nor that he was to adhere unto the King of France his designs: as well by reason of his natural addiction to peace and quiet, as for the scarcity of money which he was in, and that he would be jealous of the King of France his growing any greater. For the other practices in Italy, and in Germany, the Archduke and the Spaniards did not much regard it. So as all the danger being reduced into Flanders, and it being clearly seen that the tempest of the French Forces was to fall there, the Archduke and the Spaniards made what provision they could to withstand them. At this time, Answers come very hot from Spain, which promised the desired moneys should be suddenly sent, and all things else that was needful, not only to withstand the King of France, but even to carry the war home into his own Kingdom: Whereupon the Archduke being encouraged, hastened the raising of new men, and resolved to take into the Flanders Army a thousand of Archduke Leopolds' Horse, and 1500. of his Foot: which Leopold for want of money could not maintain. He had appointed at the same time Filippeville, a Town in the County Namure, towards the Frontiers of Champagne for his place of Muster; and resolved to go himself into the Field, if the King of France should do so● The 17. day of May was already appointed for the Archduke to be in the Town of Namures, near Filippeville, at which time the Army should be brought to the place of Muster, or Rendezvous. monsieur de Preau forbore not all this while to continued his Negotiations at Brussels; at which time the Princes seemed to live much discontented, and openly called the Archduke's Palace her Prison. And she herself in writing declared unto them, that she aught by the way of right and justice be set at liberty. She would be some whole days, and not suffer herself to be seen by any one; and endeavoured by all possible demonstrations to show how highly she was displeased to be detained in that manner in Brussels. But the King of France appearing more resolute then ever in his design of war; and declaring however, that he would in his own Person succour Brandenburg, and Newburg, he had some new discourse with the Ambassador of Flanders at Paris, and moved him that he might have leave to pass thorough Luxenburg: With which motion the Ambassador suddenly acquainted the Archduke. The King's pretence was not unknown; and 'twas thought that the two Princes themselves would be very jealous, to see so many French in Arms, and the King himself in Person, in their Country; jest that by such a succour, they might become a prey to the succourer. So as the Archduke esteeming that this was rather a first intimation of War, and that whither the King should be permitted, or denied to pass, would be a point of great importance: He thought much upon it,; whereupon several consultations were had between him and his chief Commanders, as well concerning this point, as how the War against the King should be governed. There were at this time two men chief esteemed in the Flanders Army. The one a Spaniard, Don Luis di Valasco, General of the Horse; and the other a Dutch man, Count Buckquoi, General of the Artillery: both which had formerly past with much commendation through all the inferior Charges of the Militia. As they were one day in Council what to resolve in things of so high concernment, Valasco desirous that his opinion should be clearly known, and that particular notice might be taken thereof in Spain, spoke thus; When I consider, (most powerful Prince) our affairs in Flanders, compared with those of the King of France, I found ours so short of his, as it is now more time then ever, to be cautious and secure in our Counsels. We all agreed in one supposition, that your Highness cannot have above 12 or 14 thousand Foot, and 2500. Horse; an Army which though it consist almost all of old Soldiers, yet in my opinion it aught not to be thought sufficient to Face the King of France his Army, which will have twice our numbers in it. Not doubt his Foot will not compare with ours; but so great an advantage in number is too considerable. And then if the French Horse be usually better then those of all other Nations, how much better will they prove now then our Cavalry? since to boot with their odds of number, theirs will be made up of the prime Nobility of France, who in this present occasion will wait upon the King's Person. And how much will the King's new men be encouraged and strengthened by the old Soldiers of the United Provinces, who certainly will assist his Forces against ours, either by a Bravado, or in breaking the Truce with us, in this so opportune conjuncture. It is therefore my opinion that by all means that may be we should eat encountering the King of France, and all occasions of giving him Battle: and consequently my Vote shall go, that he be permitted to pass thorough Luxenburg, since our affairs stand so now as we cannot hinder him. And as for the form of warring, since in my judgement we are to keep ourselves upon the Defence, my counsel shall be, that our Army may move from Filippeville, our place of Muster, towards that part as the King of France his Army shall move, and that we may always coast him on this side the Mause. Thus making use of the River, as of a large and deep Ditch; and of her Banks as of a firm and invincible Rampiere, it shall not be in the King's power to assault us: and on the other side, it will be in our power to keep him from entering into the best and chiefest parts of these Provinces. And if the King shall this mean while make himself Master of the Field on that side the River, he will found but few places on that side to make himself Master of, and he shall found those few so united, as in taking them he shall loose much time, and many soldiers, which will suffice to break the first violence of his Army. Thus putting out selves in this strong and secure posture of Defence, we shall fight without fight, and we shall without danger, overcome this first dangerous motion of the King of France his Forces. The mean while powerful Aids will come to us from Spain both of men and money▪ and this meanwhile also the French Forces which shall be turned against these Provinces may be weakened by many diversions, whilst we may make ours descend from the Pirenean mountains against France, and prejudice him by our Fleets in the Mediterranean Sea, and in the Ocean; and may 'cause some inward Commotion in that Kingdom. The French (as all men know) are born to Novelties; and seek out troubles no less then others eat them, which they are ready to throw among Foreigners, but more among themselves. To this purpose, if easy matter might have been formerly hoped for out of their natural unquietness, how much easilier will it be found now that the Prince of Conde is go from them, and is in our hands? How great commotion of tumults will the sudden setting up of this great ensign there 'cause? nor can they be more justly excited. Let them make trial of fire at their own homes, who will kindle it in other folk's houses. And all the evil that over-hang the assailed, let it fall on the heads of the assailers. Lo, thus we are happily past from the Defence to the Offence, so to make the King of France repent his rash undertaking of so unjust a War▪ And unless he be more blind in matter of Government, then what he appears to be in his amours, we will make him ware of the difference of overcoming weak Women, and working them to his desires, and of taking up Arms against such Forces as are those of my King, and Yours, which together do make so Formidable a Power. The King of France might remember your Highness' Victories, when clad in Purple, and still a Cardinal, you made such important progress against him in his own Kingdom. I hope they will be no less that you shall make upon this present occasion, after you shall have sustained the first brunts, at which the French are only good. They will easily be withstood, in my opinion, in the manner I have said; and all things turning afterwards to our advantage, new glory shall be added to your Highness, new reputation to the affairs of Spain, more safety to those of Flanders, and infinite honour and satisfaction to us Soldiers, by such prosperous success, as shall arise from this War. Buckquoy spoke thus to the contrary: If those remedies (most illustrious Prince) which in these present necessities of Flanders aught to be expected from Spain, were as easily to be effected as 'tis easy to discourse of them, I should likewise be of the same opinion of standing now upon the defensive part with the King of France: but I cannot believe, that such aids as we at present stand in need of here, can come from Spain either in so short a time, or in so great a measure as hath been supposed: So many years experience may have taught us, that by reason of the great distance of space, Counsel, and then succours much more, do most commonly come from thence hither when 'tIS too late; and that by reason likewise of the so immmense bulk of that so divided Monarchy, the provisions destined for Flanders are always very weak when they do come, being diverted by the so many members whereof the body is composed: we may then fear that upon this immergent occasion, provisions from those parts may meet with the wont obstructions; nay, with more then usual. The Indian Fleet is not yet expected these many months: whole Spain, is now in commotion by reason of the expulsion of the Moors; and the taking up of Arms which the Duke of Savoy threatens in Malta, is likewise a business of great consideration: so as these are all immediate diversions, and which undoubtedly make for the King of France his advantage; whereas those which have been thought upon for the affairs of Flanders are all of them doubtful, and depend upon future success: Wherhfore I am of opinion, that it will be hard to hope for such supplies from Spain, as will suffice to maintain the new Forces which are by us now added to the old: It must therefore be granted, that if your Highness shall suffer the King of France his Army to join with the Veteran Soldiery of the United Provinces, the King must of a sudden become so potent, as that he will be absolute master of the Field, not only on that side, but even on this side the Mause. For why may not he pass over the River either at the Bridge of the Town of Hue, in the Neutral Country of Liege, or in some other part, without being hindered by us? may he not then get in hither, go wither he pleaseth, and do what he will? And though the United Provinces were not before inclined to break into open War against these Countries, is it not to be feared, that invited by so fair an occasion, they may do it now? will not our affairs be then brought to the last point of despair? tis a known saying, That in extreme evils, we are to have recourse to extreme remedies; the sword heals those wounds which lenitives cannot do; and to despise dangers, proves sometimes the best way to escape them. I am then of opinion, that the present condition of the affairs of Flanders being considered, it is necessary to put on hazardous and bold resolutions, since without manifest loss of all these Provinces, circumspect and cautious counsels cannot be admitted of. I think you aught resolutely to deny the King of France, his passage through Luxenburg; that as he moves his Army towards your Frontiers you shall move yours towards his, and go to meet him, and hinder him from meeting with the Veteran Sou●d●ers of the United Provinces. I must confess this resolution hath likewise its dangers; but the others me thinks are greater and more apparent: The hazards of this, depend upon the event, which in Battles is always doubtful: nor can it be denied, but that the King of France is a gallant Commander, and that he will have with him all the flower of his Nobility on Horseback; yet if on the otherside we shall consider our men, bred up among Arms; so long and so well disciplined; accustomed every day to action and Battles: and who shall have yourself in the head for their Commander; why should we not hope that our Army should have the better of the King of France his Army? my hopes are not a whit the less for their being more in number: 'tis not numbers, but worth; not confusion, but order: not the first onset, but the constant fighting, which gets the victory: our squadrons of Foot will be satiated with blood in kill the Swissers, who will be they alone who will make any resistance: they will easily put to flight the French Foot, and will so enhearten our Horse as we may also hope to be victors on that side; so you shall see (as I hope) the War begun and ended at the same time: and so you shall see a new place made famous in these Countries, which peradventure may not given place to that of St. Quintaine, Gravelin, and Dorlan, all of them famous for the defeats which they in former times have given to the French, thereby winning so much honour to our Flanders Armies. And it may so fall out, that the King of France, when he shall see our men march so resolutely against his; may altar his mind from assailing these states, and may be brought more patiently to endure those fiery onsets which he is cause of unto himself by his so ill governed inward passions. Thus without any danger you shall have ended a War, before it be well begun; and may afterwards put on such resolves as may be most convenient for your own affairs, for the affairs of Spain, for the public service of Christendom, and for the particular good of your people. The reasons alleged by each of these great Commanders were certainly of very great weight: on the one side, if the King of France should be suffered to join with the Ancient soldiery of the United Provinces, the affairs of Flanders would be in very great danger: and on the other side, to adventure that Army suddenly in a Battle, wherein the only hopes of supporting them lay, was likewise a dangerous resolution. Marquis Spinola seemed to lean to the second proposition; were it either that Buckquois reasons prevailed more with him; or that, that counsel, which was the bolder appeared to him the most necessary: he appeared very desirous to be seen in so glorious a Theatre, as that would be, where a Battle should be given to so great a Prince, and so famous a Commander as was the King of France: to boot that he had received many disastes from the French, in their practices concerning the Princess of Conde; which peradventure moved a greater desire in him to fight them. The Pope at this time laboured very much by Fatherly admonitions; and earnest entreaties to induce the Princes interessed in this so great commotion, to preserve their former friendship: and to this purpose he had particularly destined two Nuntios in extraordinary; the one the Archbishop of Nazaret to be sent to the Court of France, and the other the Archbishop of Chieri to be sent to the Court of Spain. When amid so great perturbations, and ambiguity of affairs, certain news come to Brussels that the King of France was slain; the manner thus: Whilston the 14 of May he was in his Coach in the streets of Paris, viewing the Triumphant Arches which were prepared for the stately Coronation of his Queen; he was murdered by the hand of a base mean Catiff, who making himself master of the King's life, by resolving desperately to loose his own, gave him two deadly wounds in the flank with a long Knife. A miserable death indeed; so great a King falling by so base hands, and in the nick of time when his greatness was grown to that height, as France seemed not great enough to prescribe bounds thereunto: Which may serve for an instruction to Princes, and among them, the most powerful, to let them know, that miseries are mixed with their felicity, and that on the Theatre of Human Tragedies, they often make the most fatal and saddest Scenes. The King of France being dead, the Prince of Conde returned Post into Flanders: and on a sudden the face of affairs was altered. The Frenchman's heat was allayed; the Spaniards were very desirous to make use of this so propitious occasion, and to march on with their Army: But at last peaceable counsels prevailed; and very good intelligence and correspondency was held between them, the Archduke, and the Queen Regent, Mother to the young King. The Prince of Conde was still troubled with many cogitations: he pretended, as first Prince of the Blood, the chief government of the Kingdom did of right appertain to him, during the King's minority: and pretended also that after his Father in laws death, the office of Lord high Constable of France did belong to him: But it would have caused great jealousies to have put him into that office, and much more to have put the Kingdom into his hands; so as he at last ceased from both these pretences, and satisfied himself with other hopes, to have full contentment given him in other things at his return to France. The Archdukes were then in Merimont, and with them the Princess of Conde; who altering likewise with the alteration of affairs seemed already desirous to be reconciled to her Husband, and willing to return with him into France: Conde went quickly to Merimont to do his respects to the Archdukes, by whom he was received with like civilities as formerly; and he on his side acknowledged his great obligations to them for their having so greatly favoured his affairs. He did the like to the Spanish State ministers; and these his first compliments being over, he returned to Brussels▪ where he stayed awhile with the Prince of Orange; and then returned to Merimont, to go for France: He did not as yet see his Wife; but their reconciliation was soon after made in France: and she very well deserved his love, by her bearing of Children to him, and no less by her worth. The Constable her Father sent the Countess of Overgne (a daughter of his also, but by another Venture) to Merimont to bring the Princess from Flanders, and to thank the Archdukes for their having kept her with them. The Queen sent also Monsieur de la Bar to the same place to visit the Prince, and to invite him to come to Paris; and every day great many of the chief men of France come to see him, and offer him their service. Three days after Conde went away, and was met by his own Mother upon the Frontiers of France; and being every where encountered and embraced by divers of the Nobility, he at last, being followed by an infinite concourse of people, entered Paris. In which revolution of several affairs, fortune showing how she is pleased to sport herself daily with new spectacles of human varieties; it may suffer a dispute, whither the manner of the Prince his departure from France was more unfortunate, or the like of his return fortunate: He departed a Fugitive, in manifest danger of being taken, and living long in misery, and in the horror of Imprisonment: He returned not long after as in Triumph, with such prerogatives of Honour and of Authority, as he might seem rather to be King then First Prince of the Blood Royal. FINIS. A TABLE of the chiefest things contained in the RELATIONS. AQuisgrane, and the description thereof page 142 Agent from England in Brussels, and his Proposals, ibid. Aids given by Hen. the 4th to the United Provinces in time of War 43 Amsterdam described 12 Antwerp sacked 25 Antonio Zuarez 60 Anabaptiss 75 Archduke Leopold sent to juliers by the Emperor 130 Archduke Albertus of a Cardinal made Governor of Flanders 31. The happy beginning of his Government. Ibid. He marries the Infants Isabel 32. Is routed and wounded at Newport. 33. He besiegeth Ostend. ib. 34. His bodily qualities. 52. His gifts of mind. ib. He endeavours to imitate King Philip. ib. He inclines to a composition with the United Provinces. 98. Employs Father Neyen to introduce a Treaty. ib. 99 His opinion in the Prince of Condes affairs 156. His endeavours to make peace between Brandeuburg and Newburg. 132. He and the Spanish Officers are much moved touching the novelty of juliers. 134. He makes the Gatholick King condescend to the Treaty at Santen 150 Archduke's; how gallantly they are served. 58. Upon what Princes they confine, and what intelligence they hold with them. 62 Archduke Ernestus Governor of Flanders 30 Archduke Mathias goes secretly into Flanders 26. Takes upon him the title of Kingly Governor. ib. Returns to Germany 28 Authority of the Archpriest in England 81 Archbishoprics and Bishoprics in England 78 Arch bishoprics and Bishoprics which were in Scotland 83. Of Ireland 84 Articles of the Truce of Flanders 35 Assembly of the particular States in Holland for what cause called 7 The General Politic Assembly of the Hugonots in France, how permitted then 91. The Catholic Army enters juliers B Battle of Newport 33 Brandenburg is jealous of Newburg 132 He breaks forth into Novelties. ib. makes himself Master of juliers 133 Bruges 69 Brussels 70 Books written by the King of England against the Pope's Authority 66 C CAlvinists rule in the United Provinces 74 Calvinists of England ib. Calvinism only permitted in France 91 Capitulation at Santen, by what Deputies subscribed 148 Chief Head of the Forces of the General Union 9 Chapters of Shee-Cannons, and their Institution 73 Chief of the secular Clergy in England by the name of Archpriest 81 Cardinal Granvel 19 Cardinal Andrea d' Austria Governor of Flanders 32 Builds a great Fort ib. Catholics, how many in the United Provinces 73 Catholics of England, how distinguished 80, etc. Christiern Duchess Dowager of Lorain 18 Clergy Secular in Flanders 70 The Company of the Holland Merchants do all they can to keep up Trading into the Indieses 114 Comparison between Count Maurice and Marquis Spinola 37 Conferences of the Hugonots in France 90 Conferences and Provincial Synods of the Hugonots, when Assembled ib. Conclusion of the Truce of Flanders 127 Conformity between the Government of the Swissers and the United Provinces 47 Consistories of the Hugonots in France 90 The Council which resembles the Body of the Assembly of the particular States in Holland 6 The Council of Deputies representing the Great Assembly General of the United Provinces, and its Authority 8 The Council of State of the United Provinces, and its Authority ib. The Council of State in Flanders enters upon the Government after the death of the Commendador General 24 it resolves to drive out the Spaniards ib. The Supreme Council of Malines 56 Particular Counsels neare the persons of the Arch. Duke's ib. The particular Council of the Hugonots of France in every Province 91 Count Maurice 17 Substituted in his Father's place 29 Wins many places in Flanders 31 His prudence and Military worth 33 one of the greatest Commanders in our times 36 The judgement that Henry the 4th gave of him 37 The best Commander the United Provinces could have had ib. What Estate and Lordships he holds 39 His age and Kindred ib. Whither he had any Design to make himself Sovereign of the United Provinces ib. He trieth all ways that the Truce may not go on ●19 Count de Fuentes takes on him the Government of Flanders 31 Routs the French at Dorlam. ib. Count Lodovick of Nassaw routeth the Count of Aremberg 21 Is defeated and slain at Mooch 23 Count Mansfielt Governeth Flanders: a great part of his soldiers mutiny 31 Count of Zolleren, Ambassador extraordinary from the Emperor to the Archduke 148 The Countess of Auvergne sent to re-conduct the Princess of Conde to Paris 172 The Court of Flanders like to that of Spain 59 The Crown of Spain receiveth great damages from the Rebels in the Indieses 35 D THe Davidists 75 Denmark 87 Deacons among the Hugonots in France 90 The Declaration of Liberty claimed by the United Provinces, how interpreted by the Archduke and the Spaniards 98 Deputies for the Archduke's to be sent into Holland, who they were 110 Deputies for the United Provinat the Treaty for the Truce, who they were 112 An arrogant Proposal made by them at the first meeting 113 What Deputies were at the Treaty of Santen 148 Differences between Spinola and Count Maurice, upon the Article of removing the Soldiery out of the State of Cleves 149 Discord between the secular Priests and the regular in the United Provinces, and upon what occasions 76 Discord between the secular Clergy, and the Jesuits in England 81 Don john of Austria● enters Flanders 25 He approves of the Peace of Gaunt ib. He seizeth on the Castle of Namour ib. He dies 26 Duke of Alanzon received by the Rebels for their Protector 26 Would make himself their Prince 27 Returns into France 28 Duke of Alva chosen Governor of Flanders 19 He enters the Low-countrieses with a potent Army 20 He beginneth his Government with rigour ib. He causeth Egmont and Horn to be beheaded 21 He routeth Count Lodovick of Nassaw in Friesland ib. He driveth the Prince of Orange out of Flanders 22 He defeateth the French Hugonots succours ib. he leaves Flanders ibid. Duke of Medina Celi refuseth the Government of Flanders ib. E ELders among the Hugonots of France 90 Electors of the Empire aliened from King Mathias 67 The English, what ends they had in fomenting the Rebellion of Flanders 43 Suspected by the Catholic Provinces of Flanders 64 Ambassadors of England & France jointly propose the Truce to the United Provinces 117 they offer to make an agreement between Brandenburg & Newburg 146 The two Kings Ambassadors and the Catholic Deputies go to Antwerp 127 The Expenses of the Archdukes exceed their Revenues 57 How unmeasurable those of the Wars in Flanders are grown ib Expenses of the Catholic King and Arch-duke's in time of Truce 64 F THe Faction of the Malcontents in Flanders 26 Frederick Spinola Command's a Squadron of Galleys in the Flemish Seas 34 Is slain in fight ib The Flemings neither wholly Free, nor wholly subject 55 Friar Inigo di Brizuela, a Dominican, Confessor to the Archduke 61 The Arguments he was to make use of in the Spanish Court, for overcoming the difficulties of the Treaty concerning a Truce 125 The Fortification of Mulen demolished 143 The mighty Fortifications of the United Provinces 96 G THe Gantois 69 The Governor of Holland and his Authority 6 The Governors of the Cautionary Towns in France, of what condition they are 94 The particular Government of every one of the United Provinces 5 Ecclesiastical Government in Flanders heretofore 68 Government spiritual of Catholics in England 84 Government of the States possessed by the King of Denmark 87 Politic Government of the Hugonots of France 91 The Great Assembly of the United Provinces, when it useth to be called 7 H THe Hague in Holland and its Prerogatives 9 Henry the 4th King of France, what end he had in endeavouring the Truce of Flanders 42 His Interests in Flanders 102 He is in very great Authority among the United Provinces 103 Henry the 8th King of England 67 How he fell into Apostasy ib. Heresy how it got into France 89 Heretics in the Archduke's Provinces 70 High Council in Holland Holland how Governed 4 The administration of Justice there 6 Holland and Zealand the first Provinces that rebelled 74 Hollanders and Zealanders how they applied themselves to Navigation into the Indieses 14 Why they could never get into the West-indieses ib. House of Cleves, when it failed 129 House of Nassaw, and its original 17 House of Burgundy 46 Anciently united with the Kings of England 62 Hugonots of France, and their Ecclesiastical Government 89 the division of their Provinces 90 Their Government in matters of State 91 Their end to bring themselves to the Soveraignry ibid. Their Cautionary Towns 93 at what charges they maintain their Garrisons ib. What intelligence they hold out of France 94 Heretics in France how many there may be 91 I THe Infanta of Flanders, and her personal qualities 53 She imitated the Great Isabel of Castille ib. A Princess of admirable constancy ib. bred up in State-affairs by her Father King Philip 54 The Interests that will keep France and the Low-countries in good correspondency 42 Intimation by the Marquis of Course, the King of France his name to the Prince of Conde 157 Irish in a manner all Catholics 84 K THe King of Spain is resolved that some overture of accommodation shall be made in Flanders 98 Is of the same opinion with the Archduke, for a Treaty with the United Provinces ib. How much he was troubled at the Invasion of juliers 135 The King of France and his Interests in Flanders 102 One of the greatest Kings that ever France had 151 Takes divers courses for the overtaking of Conde 153 Demands passage through Luxemburg 168 Is lamentably murdered 171 The King of England, what Heresy he follows 77 His end concerning the War in Flanders 103 He endeavours to make his Mediation necessary to the Spuniards for the advancing of the accommodation in Flanders 117 The King of Denmark, his qualities of body and mind 86 His Revenue 87 What Heresy he professeth 88 What correspondence he holds with other Princes ib L LEague between the King of France and the United Provinces 116 A Letter from the Spanish Ambassador in Brussels to the Catholic King 146 Liberty of Conscience, how brought into France 89 Lewis Verreychin 59 Lutherans in the United Provinces 75 M Marquess Spinola 33 Is made Camp-master-general 34 Makes Count Maurice rise from the siege of Groll ib. when he come into Flanders, and upon what occasion 60 His singular qualities ib. Of very great authority in Flanders 61 provides with wonderful speed, all that is necessary for the Army 137 Margaret Duchess of Parma, Bastard-Daughter to the Emperor Charles the fift, made Governess of Flanders, 18 Ministers of the Hugonots of France, and their Office, 90 N NEwburg takes in Dosseldorp 133 turns Catholic 135 Is very urgent for the Archduke's Army to draw out 136 a Prince of great piety and prudence 150 Nobility of England, how to be considered in point of Religion 79 Names of the Provinces in France according to the division made by the Hugonots 91 The Nuntioship of Flanders what consequence it is of 66 The Nuntio of Flanders, what he observed concerning the managing of the Truce 96 He was in the Catholic Army, and upon what occasion 139 What Offices he did in the affairs of Conde 155 OH OAth of Allegiance in England 81 The Opinion of Barnevelt prevails before that of Count Maurice 110 Sundry opinions whither the K. of France would take up arms against Flanders or not 162 Orations of Count Maurice 105 Of Barnevelt 107 of john Maldereo 118 of Precedent jannine 120 of Don Lewis di Valasco 168 of Count Bucquoi 169 of Marquis Spinola 140 Ostend yielded to Marquis Spinola 34 P THe Peace of Gaunt, and what it contains 24 Princes pretending to the house of Cleves 129 Prince of Conde, nephew to the K. of France, first Prince of the blood 152 married Margaret of Monmorancy ib. resolves to remove her from the Court, and flies with her into Flanders ib. goes to Colen 153 is invited to Brussels 154 Writes to Rome in justification of himself 155 after the King's death is raised to higher thoughts 171, 172 Prince of Orange father to Count Maurice 18 his nature and qualities 19 takes to wife Ann of Saxony ib. he entereth Flanders with a new Army 21 retires into Holland ib. is wounded 28 is slain ib. Prince of Parma Governor of Flanders gaineth the Malcontents 27 besiegeth Antwerp 29 Diverse Princes troubled to hear of the Overtures for a Truce in Flanders 102 United Provinces what pretence they made for their rising 3 how governed before ib. with what Princes they are most at odds, and with whom they hold best correspondence 40 begin to suspect the King of France 42 their intelligence with the Heretical Princes of Germany 44 they have begun some with the Turk 45 whither their new Commonwealth be likely to last ib. their present Government defective 47 if they were inclinable to be governed by a Monarch again, what Prince it is likely they would submit to 48 what Declaration they claimed before they would come to any Treaty of accommodation 98 they accept of the proposal made by Father Neyen 100 they make great rejoicing at the Declaration of Liberty ib. their description and Government ib. Priest's secular and regular in the United Provinces 66 how they frequent Holland ib. Priest's secular and regular in England, how they officiate among the Catholics there 80 Q QUeen Mary of England, and her Zeal for Religion 83 Queen Elizabeth of England protects a new the rebels of Flanders 29 How she become 〈◊〉 Heretic 67 R Catholic Religion in the United Provinces 67 how much it flourished in England, till H●nry the 8th fell from the Church ib. Rochel 93 It's privileges and strength 94 S SCotland 83 How much the Catholic Religion is oppressed there ib. Sect of Calvin in the United Provinces 74 Parliamentary in England 77 Protestant in England 78 Seminaries for Gatholick Missions into England 83 The memorable Siege of Leyden 23 Spaniards, Declared Rebels by the Council of State in Flanders 24 They resolve to be revenged ib. They engage a new in France, and surprise Amiens 31 Their indignation at the going of the Catholic Deputies into Holland 111 The States General of the United Provinces meet to conclude the Truce 127 States of every Province in the Low-countrieses, whereof composed 3 States of the Archduke's, of what Provinces they consist 54 Supplication of the Nobles presented to the Duchess of Parma 19 T TYron, flying out of Ireland is entertained in Flanders 66 The Treaty of Colen for accommodating the affairs of Flanders 27 Treaty of the Truce in Flanders 95 FIVE THe Vicar Apostolical in the United Provinces 66 Victory of Don john at Geblours 26 Universities of Douai and Louvain how Catholic, and how much devoted to the Holy See 70 University of Leyden in Holland 66 W Wesel, its Situation and Government 143 Those of Wesel their amazement and affright ib. Why they refused to take in the Soldiers of the United Provinces ib. FINIS.